Selected quad for the lemma: nature_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
nature_n person_n union_n unity_n 3,713 5 10.0161 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30241 CXLV expository sermons upon the whole 17th chapter of the Gospel according to St. John, or, Christs prayer before his passion explicated, and both practically and polemically improved by Anthony Burgess ... Burgess, Anthony, d. 1664. 1656 (1656) Wing B5651; ESTC R13734 964,431 860

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o for_o god_n be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o all_o man_n to_o which_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n allege_v that_o of_o the_o poet_n we_o be_v his_o offspring_n act._n 17.27_o thus_o also_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o believer_n in_o respect_n of_o adoption_n for_o so_o our_o saviour_n joh._n 20.17_o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n but_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a generation_n of_o his_o son_n as_o be_v more_o to_o be_v show_v the_o socinian_o will_v have_v he_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n partly_o because_o of_o that_o extraordinary_a conception_n and_o birth_n partly_o because_o of_o the_o constitute_n and_o sanctify_v of_o he_o to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o partly_o but_o principal_o because_o of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o exaltation_n to_o that_o great_a power_n and_o dominion_n which_o now_o he_o have_v but_o these_o thing_n be_v only_o declarative_a and_o consequential_a to_o that_o eternal_a generation_n whereby_o indeed_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n proper_o and_o thus_o the_o jew_n understand_v it_o when_o they_o accuse_v he_o for_o blasphemy_n because_o by_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o thereby_o make_v himself_o god_n which_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o deny_v or_o refuse_v but_o prove_v it_o more_o firm_o last_o in_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n it_o be_v thereby_o employ_v that_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o original_n of_o divine_a be_v to_o the_o son_n thus_o john_n 5.26_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o be_v only_o proper_a to_o god_n now_o as_o the_o father_n have_v it_o so_o also_o have_v the_o son_n but_o he_o have_v it_o by_o donation_n or_o communication_n from_o the_o father_n in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v that_o christ_n say_v he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o himself_o but_o as_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n still_o reduce_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o not_o that_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v beget_v but_o the_o second_o person_n who_o have_v the_o divine_a nature_n second_o the_o property_n of_o the_o son_n be_v to_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o herein_o lie_v the_o true_a proper_a difference_n of_o those_o two_o person_n the_o father_n be_v of_o himself_o not_o beget_v the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o father_n and_o beget_v now_o this_o do_v imply_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o his_o be_v by_o creation_n as_o adam_n have_v and_o angel_n who_o therefore_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o true_o and_o real_o by_o generation_n for_o so_o the_o scripture_n appropriate_v this_o to_o he_o that_o he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n only_o you_o be_v not_o to_o measure_v this_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a generation_n with_o that_o of_o the_o creature_n but_o to_o abstract_n it_o from_o all_o such_o humane_a imperfection_n and_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v true_o a_o generation_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o univocal_a nature_n with_o that_o of_o creature_n so_o that_o as_o god_n be_v not_o in_o a_o predicament_n neither_o be_v there_o the_o same_o univocal_a be_v to_o god_n and_o the_o creature_n thus_o it_o be_v also_o in_o this_o generation_n let_v we_o not_o therefore_o judge_v of_o this_o mystery_n by_o example_n and_o instance_n from_o the_o creature_n for_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v incomprehensible_a so_o also_o be_v this_o generation_n use_v 1_o to_o bewail_v the_o doctrinal_a error_n and_o blasphemy_n whereby_o the_o devil_n have_v seduce_v many_o in_o this_o point_n oh_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o preserve_v thou_o from_o such_o poison_n many_o desperate_o preach_v and_o write_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o true_o god_n nor_o the_o eternal_a god_n and_o so_o make_v we_o guilty_a of_o horrible_a idolatry_n and_o withal_o overthrow_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o religion_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o blasphemy_n and_o damnable_a heresy_n be_v in_o our_o nature_n which_o we_o shall_v be_v plunge_v into_o if_o god_n leave_v we_o unto_o ourselves_o use_v 2._o of_o exhortation_n to_o take_v heed_n not_o only_o of_o unbelief_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o promise_n but_o also_o the_o doctrinal_n this_o gift_n be_v also_o of_o god_n it_o be_v he_o that_o enable_v and_o confirm_v the_o heart_n in_o this_o particular_a also_o and_o indeed_o dogmatical_a faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o salvifical_a use_v 3_o to_o admire_v the_o love_n both_o of_o father_n and_o son_n in_o procure_v our_o salvation_n for_o we_o the_o father_n love_n be_v see_v to_o send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n in_o who_o he_o delight_v more_o than_o in_o all_o creature_n into_o the_o world_n and_o to_o die_v such_o a_o ignominious_a death_n for_o we_o enemy_n and_o then_o the_o son_n love_n be_v see_v in_o leave_v that_o glory_n and_o blessedness_n he_o have_v for_o a_o while_n to_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o wrath_n and_o anger_n for_o our_o sake_n no_o wonder_n if_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n can_v never_o be_v sufficient_o enough_o take_v up_o with_o these_o thing_n use_v 4._o to_o endeavour_v after_o such_o a_o unity_n as_o the_o father_n and_o son_n have_v it_o be_v the_o precedent_n in_o the_o text_n do_v the_o father_n and_o son_n ever_o disagree_v do_v the_o son_n will_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o father_n another_o neither_o aught_o there_o to_o be_v any_o disagreement_n among_o believer_n sermon_n cxviii_o the_o glorious_a mystery_n of_o the_o saint_n union_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o the_o father_n by_o he_o open_v joh_n 17.21_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n art_n in_o i_o etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n we_o have_v the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o godly_a man_n union_n declare_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o godly_a unity_n they_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n not_o in_o the_o devil_n or_o sin_n as_o wicked_a man_n be_v 2._o it_o be_v not_o a_o bodily_a union_n and_o visible_a but_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a because_o it_o be_v a_o unity_n in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 3._o it_o be_v not_o absolute_o and_o adequate_o equal_a to_o the_o union_n between_o the_o father_n and_o son_n for_o our_o saviour_n do_v plain_o separate_v and_o make_v a_o difference_n he_o say_v not_o before_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o thou_o but_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o distinguish_v himself_o thereby_o in_o a_o transcendent_a way_n from_o the_o creature_n so_o neither_o in_o this_o place_n do_v he_o say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o with_o we_o though_o that_o also_o be_v true_a in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n christ_n the_o head_n and_o the_o church_n his_o body_n be_v one_o in_o that_o respect_n because_o that_o may_v imply_v unity_n of_o nature_n and_o essence_n but_o one_o in_o we_o now_o for_o all_o believer_n to_o be_v one_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n may_v admit_v of_o a_o twofold_a exposition_n 1._o the_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v as_o much_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d per_fw-la for_o so_o it_o be_v often_o use_v and_o then_o the_o sense_n will_v be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o by_o we_o that_o be_v by_o thy_o grace_n for_o it_o be_v not_o nature_n but_o grace_n that_o make_v this_o unity_n thus_o eph._n 5.8_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v light_n in_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v by_o the_o lord_n but_o this_o seem_v not_o so_o genuine_a therefore_o the_o 2_o interpretation_n be_v more_o receive_v which_o make_v the_o expression_n to_o be_v declarative_a of_o that_o terminus_fw-la in_o which_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v unite_v the_o centre_n in_o which_o all_o the_o line_n meet_v the_o head_n in_o which_o all_o the_o member_n the_o root_n in_o which_o all_o the_o branch_n the_o spring_n in_o which_o all_o the_o stream_n be_v conjoin_v and_o he_o say_v in_o we_o for_o though_o we_o be_v proximely_a and_o immediate_o unite_v unto_o christ_n our_o head_n yet_o thereby_o we_o also_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o father_n father_n obs_n that_o all_o believer_n be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o in_o he_o to_o the_o father_n this_o union_n of_o believer_n with_o christ_n be_v a_o unspeakable_a mystery_n the_o scripture_n represent_v it_o under_o many_o similitude_n yet_o we_o can_v conceive_v of_o it_o according_a to_o its_o dignity_n but_o as_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n into_o one_o person_n do_v exceed_v our_o comprehension_n so_o likewise_o do_v the_o mystical_a union_n of_o believer_n with_o christ_n and_o in_o he_o with_o the_o father_n
be_v reduce_v to_o one_o quest_n see_v god_n have_v promise_v one_o heart_n and_o way_n and_o christ_n pray_v for_o it_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v there_o be_v so_o many_o breach_n among_o the_o godly_a answ_n 1._o true_a unity_n be_v from_o christ_n and_o terminate_v in_o he_o there_o be_v a_o wicked_a unity_n 2._o a_o direct_v and_o order_v unity_n 3._o it_o be_v consistent_a with_o such_o grace_n that_o yet_o have_v a_o outward_a appearance_n of_o dissolve_v unity_n remedy_n for_o the_o prevent_n and_o heal_a division_n in_o the_o church_n false_a way_n of_o unity_n 1._o by_o papist_n 2._o by_o socinian_o the_o true_a unite_n principle_n as_o to_o true_a doctrine_n ii_o rule_n to_o keep_v up_o unity_n in_o church-order_n and_o to_o prevent_v schism_n iii_o rule_n for_o unity_n in_o respect_n of_o love_n to_o prevent_v wrath_n and_o quarrelling_n observe_v the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v two_o distinct_a person_n yet_o one_o in_o nature_n and_o essence_n consider_v 1._o god_n consider_v absolute_o and_o relative_o 2._o there_o be_v notwithstanding_o but_o one_o god_n 3._o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v a_o object_n of_o faith_n and_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n the_o characteristical_a property_n of_o the_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n observe_v that_o all_o believer_n be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o in_o he_o to_o the_o father_n i._o consider_v those_o scripture-expression_n to_o represent_v this_o unity_n ii_o there_o must_v be_v a_o unition_n before_o there_o can_v be_v a_o union_n iii_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a union_n with_o christ_n and_o a_o supernatural_a iv._o this_o union_n be_v whole_o spiritual_a v._o it_o be_v also_o real_a vi_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o union_n with_o christ_n vii_o the_o excellecy_n of_o it_o viii_o ix_o x._o xi_o observe_v that_o unity_n among_o believer_n be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o enlarge_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n consid_n i._o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o doctrine_n yet_o unity_n simple_o as_o such_o be_v not_o a_o infallible_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o papist_n answer_v unity_n without_o true_a doctrine_n no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n the_o papist_n no_o such_o cause_n to_o boast_v of_o unity_n why_o unity_n be_v a_o attractive_a loadstone_n to_o bring_v other_o unto_o the_o faith_n what_o those_o proper_a sin_n be_v that_o division_n among_o the_o godly_a be_v apt_a to_o breed_v in_o the_o world_n observe_v that_o the_o believe_v of_o christ_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o world_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o conversion_n unto_o god_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v dogmatic_a or_o historical_a 1._o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n 3._o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v natural_o not_o only_a unfit_a but_o contrary_n and_o opposite_a to_o the_o way_n of_o believe_a heavenly_a truth_n 4._o this_o faith_n may_v be_v without_o sanctification_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n 5._o where_o this_o faith_n be_v there_o will_v be_v some_o kind_n of_o pious_a disposition_n of_o heart_n 6._o the_o motive_n of_o it_o be_v divine_a 7._o it_o be_v grace_n though_o but_o common_a grace_n 8._o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o conversion_n the_o property_n of_o it_o 1._o it_o lift_v a_o man_n above_o his_o natural_a reason_n 2._o it_o contradict_v not_o reason_n 3._o it_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o etc._n etc._n 4._o it_o have_v universality_n in_o its_o assent_v observe_v that_o the_o glory_n which_o christ_n have_v he_o communicate_v one_o way_n or_o other_o to_o his_o people_n consider_v i._o christ_n personal_a glory_n be_v incommunicable_a ii_o what_o be_v those_o effect_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o christ_n vouchsafe_v to_o he_o iii_o none_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o that_o glory_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o union_n with_o he_o 1._o no_o man_n till_o he_o be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n have_v any_o true_a and_o solid_a glory_n in_o what_o respect_v humane_a and_o earthly_a glory_n come_v short_a of_o heavenly_a corollary_n ii_o that_o the_o mean_a christian_n surpass_v solomon_n in_o all_o his_o glory_n corollary_n iii_o iv._o it_o consume_v all_o love_n and_o desire_v of_o vainglory_n v._o let_v they_o faithful_o do_v christ_n work_n notwithstanding_o all_o reproach_n wicked_a man_n load_v they_o with_o vi_o admire_v the_o bounty_n of_o his_o grace_n vii_o doct._n christ_n though_o god_n have_v many_o thing_n give_v he_o of_o his_o father_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a give_v what_o thing_n be_v give_v christ_n of_o the_o father_n observe_v unity_n among_o believer_n be_v part_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o christ_n as_o mediator_n have_v obtain_v for_o they_o consid_n i._o unity_n be_v the_o church_n glory_n their_o glory_n active_o and_o passive_o ii_o christ_n purchase_v as_o mediator_n this_o privilege_n as_o well_o as_o other_o christ_n say_v to_o be_v in_o believer_n several_a way_n 1._o by_o communication_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o we_o 2._o sacramental_o 3._o by_o his_o spirit_n 4._o by_o a_o gracious_a inhabitation_n and_o sanctify_a presence_n doct._n how_o christ_n live_v in_o a_o believer_n the_o false_a way_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o people_n how_o or_o in_o what_o manner_n christ_n be_v in_o his_o people_n how_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o people_n more_o particular_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o doct._n as_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o so_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n be_v also_o thereby_o in_o we_o how_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n quest_n how_o the_o father_n and_o son_n can_v be_v in_o believer_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v such_o great_a remainder_n of_o sin_n in_o they_o answ_n doct._n the_o father_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o believer_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o perfect_a and_o consummate_a unity_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o themselves_o what_o be_v imply_v in_o their_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o unity_n doct._n that_o faith_n be_v knowledge_n what_o knowledge_n faith_n be_v not_o 1._o not_o a_o knowledge_n by_o sense_n 2._o not_o a_o perfect_a comprehension_n and_o intuitive_a vision_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o believe_v 3._o nor_o like_o those_o imperfect_a act_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v call_v suspicion_n opinion_n or_o doubt_v 4._o nor_o be_v it_o from_o the_o evidence_n of_o any_o internal_a principle_n what_o knowledge_n the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n be_v reason_n why_o faith_n must_v be_v know_v or_o have_v knowledge_n accompany_v of_o it_o observe_v god_n the_o father_n love_v believer_n even_o as_o he_o love_v christ_n i._o wherein_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o christ_n and_o believer_n be_v not_o alike_o ii_o wherein_o god_n love_v to_o christ_n and_o believer_n be_v alike_o 1._o in_o love_a christ_n and_o they_o as_o one_o mystical_a person_n 2._o in_o the_o property_n of_o it_o 3._o in_o regard_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o obj._n answ_n doct._n it_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n to_o the_o world_n to_o know_v how_o great_o believer_n be_v love_v of_o god_n the_o usefulness_n of_o the_o world_n know_v how_o great_o the_o saint_n be_v belove_v of_o god_n will_v appear_v in_o these_o particular_n how_o difficult_a it_o be_v for_o the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o persuade_v observe_v without_o grace_n here_o there_o be_v no_o glory_n hereafter_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o grace_n doct._n 2._o glory_n be_v a_o gift_n observe_v the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o happiness_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o heaven_n lie_v in_o this_o that_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o christ_n and_o have_v immediate_a communion_n with_o the_o lord_n of_o immediate_a communion_n with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n consider_v these_o thing_n the_o ground_n why_o god_n presence_n in_o heaven_n be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o happiness_n of_o a_o glorify_a believer_n doct._n it_o be_v a_o necessary_a duty_n in_o a_o christian_a in_o his_o approach_n to_o god_n to_o think_v on_o those_o attribute_n and_o relation_n in_o he_o which_o may_v excite_v and_o stir_v up_o holy_a confindence_n and_o boldness_n consid_n i._n no_o wicked_a man_n be_v in_o a_o condition_n fit_a to_o pray_v or_o approach_v unto_o god_n upon_o these_o term_n ii_o it_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n for_o the_o humble_a christian_n in_o his_o prayer_n to_o improve_v this_o relation_n of_o a_o father_n doct._n 2._o christ_n prayer_n for_o his_o people_n will_v certain_o and_o infallible_o prevail_v for_o they_o doct._n the_o great_a end_n of_o our_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v to_o behold_v and_o enjoy_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n how_o much_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o expression_n of_o behold_v christ_n glory_n what_o be_v that_o glory_n which_o they_o shall_v behold_v shine_v in_o christ_n doct._n christ_n as_o mediator_n have_v his_o glory_n give_v he_o proposition_n a●out_v this_o point_n christ_n as_o god_n can_v have_v any_o thing_n give_v he_o unless_o by_o way_n of_o manifestation_n and_o external_a celebration_n obj._n answ_n doubt_n sol._n doubt_n sol._n doubt_n sol._n socinian_n argument_n answer_v how_o many_o way_n we_o may_v glorify_v christ_n doct._n 2._o that_o it_o be_v no_o freewill_n or_o preparatory_a work_n in_o man_n that_o begin_v either_o his_o grace_n or_o glory_n but_o the_o sole_a gift_n of_o god_n observe_v that_o god_n the_o father_n love_v christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o thereby_o all_o believer_n in_o he_o from_o all_o eternity_n how_o righteousness_n may_v be_v attribute_v unto_o god_n observe_v god_n whether_o consider_v as_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n or_o a_o father_n to_o believer_n be_v righteous_a in_o all_o his_o way_n i._o god_n be_v just_a in_o all_o his_o administration_n to_o devil_n and_o wicked_a man_n ii_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n as_o a_o father_n to_o his_o people_n in_o all_o their_o affliction_n observe_v the_o world_n be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n in_o a_o save_a manner_n demonstration_n of_o the_o point_n the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n observe_v christ_n be_v the_o original_n and_o fontal_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o knowledge_n that_o believer_n have_v proposition_n about_o the_o point_n doct._n that_o it_o be_v a_o indear_n respect_n of_o believer_n to_o god_n that_o they_o do_v own_o he_o and_o cleave_v to_o hint_n when_o the_o whole_a world_n go_v quite_o contrary_a proposition_n clear_v the_o point_n doct._n that_o believer_n do_v not_o only_o at_o their_o first_o conversion_n but_o in_o the_o whole_a progress_n of_o their_o life_n need_v constant_a illumination_n and_o teach_n from_o god_n i._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o object_n two_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o be_v love_v by_o he_o but_o they_o be_v to_o endeavour_v after_o the_o sense_n and_o apprehension_n of_o this_o in_o their_o own_o heart_n conside_fw-la i._o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v take_v two_o way_n in_o scripture_n ii_o god_n may_v love_v a_o man_n and_o he_o know_v it_o not_o iii_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n to_o be_v labour_v for_o iv._o the_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n may_v be_v immediate_a or_o mediate_a v._o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o his_o be_v incomprehensible_a the_o advantage_n a_o believer_n have_v by_o have_v the_o powerful_a feel_n of_o god_n love_n proposition_n to_o inform_v in_o this_o point_n i._o ii_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n favour_n to_o consist_v with_o some_o doubt_n iii_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n may_v consist_v with_o a_o feel_n of_o a_o spiritual_a combat_n within_o we_o help_v to_o get_v and_o keep_v this_o favour_n of_o god_n
father_n then_o and_o the_o son_n have_v the_o same_o gracious_a will_n have_v the_o same_o purpose_n of_o mercy_n and_o who_o christ_n do_v invite_v the_o father_n invit_v who_o ch●ist_n call_v the_o father_n call_v so_o that_o in_o and_o by_o christ_n we_o may_v see_v the_o gracious_a and_o glorious_a thought_n of_o mercy_n god_n the_o father_n have_v from_o all_o eternity_n to_o his_o people_n indeed_o as_o he_o be_v man_n though_o his_o humane_a will_n be_v not_o contrary_a yet_o we_o see_v he_o speak_v conditional_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v away_o yet_o not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v matth._n 26_o 39_o therefore_o his_o humane_a will_n if_o absolute_o consider_v do_v desire_v freedom_n from_o death_n but_o if_o particular_o consider_v in_o these_o circumstance_n than_o he_o empty_v that_o particular_a stream_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o ocean_n of_o the_o divine_a 6._o the_o son_n and_o the_o father_n have_v the_o same_o propriety_n in_o all_o the_o godly_a godly_a those_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o father_n belong_v also_o to_o the_o son_n this_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o general_a speech_n in_o the_o text_n the_o apostle_n be_v thou_o and_o all_o thou_o be_v i_o so_o that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o abdicate_v his_o right_n by_o the_o donation_n of_o they_o to_o christ_n hence_o joh._n 20.17_o i_o go_v to_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n by_o way_n of_o comfort_n put_v we_o into_o some_o co-partnership_n with_o his_o propriety_n those_o then_o that_o be_v christ_n sheep_n they_o have_v also_o god_n mark_v upon_o they_o they_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o father_n by_o grace_n and_o to_o the_o son_n by_o merit_n and_o purchase_v so_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v to_o proceed_v by_o degree_n to_o evidence_n their_o propriety_n in_o christ_n and_o then_o in_o the_o father_n for_o say_v christ_n if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o will_v have_v know_v my_o father_n joh._n 8.16_o last_o they_o have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o that_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o defence_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o people_n joh._n 10._o none_o can_v pull_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n than_o he_o add_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o one_o as_o in_o nature_n so_o in_o that_o omnipotent_a power_n to_o govern_v and_o preserve_v his_o child_n to_o everlasting_a happiness_n so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o mere_o speculative_a but_o tend_v to_o much_o practical_a edification_n father_n in_o the_o next_o place_n consider_v how_o all_o that_o christ_n have_v be_v the_o father_n and_o so_o reciprocal_o generation_n 1._o by_o eternal_a generation_n the_o socinian_o will_v grant_v the_o son_n have_v many_o transcendent_a prerogative_n but_o not_o by_o eternal_a generation_n but_o by_o a_o temporal_a donation_n this_o can_v be_v so_o because_o the_o psalmist_n long_o before_o christ_n be_v bear_v say_v this_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o psa_fw-la 2.7_o and_o his_o out-going_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o old_a mic._n 5.1_o from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n so_o that_o christ_n have_v these_o thing_n of_o the_o father_n by_o nature_n even_o as_o the_o sun_n beam_n have_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o sun_n though_o there_o be_v a_o great_a dissimilitude_n in_o this_o comparison_n the_o son_n than_o be_v not_o of_o the_o father_n as_o the_o world_n be_v by_o a_o voluntary_a creation_n but_o by_o a_o natural_a generation_n union_n 2._o if_o we_o consider_v christ_n as_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o even_o then_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v be_v he_o the_o infinite_a majesty_n of_o god_n christ_n nor_o only_a as_o god_n but_o as_o god-man_n have_v but_o how_o not_o as_o if_o the_o property_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o that_o as_o the_o lutheran_n hold_v say_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v infinite_a omnipresent_v that_o be_v absurd_a for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v eternal_a when_o it_o be_v plain_a the_o humane_a nature_n have_v a_o be_v in_o a_o time_n but_o only_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o personal_a union_n there_o be_v a_o communication_n of_o property_n not_o to_o the_o nature_n but_o to_o the_o person_n insomuch_o that_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n act._n 25._o how_o can_v that_o be_v but_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o personal_a union_n the_o divine_a nature_n have_v no_o blood_n neither_o can_v it_o suffer_v and_o thus_o christ_n say_v the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o i●_n in_o heaven_n joh._n 3._o that_o can_v not_o be_v because_o of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o by_o the_o personal_a union_n so_o that_o although_o the_o text_n do_v principal_o intend_v christ_n communion_n with_o the_o father_n as_o god_n in_o the_o identity_n of_o his_o nature_n yet_o this_o may_v in_o some_o sense_n be_v extend_v to_o christ_n both_o god_n and_o man_n therefore_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v very_o fruitful_a 1._o by_o doctrinal_a information_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v true_o god_n have_v all_o thing_n god_n the_o father_n have_v therefore_o retain_v by_o a_o strong_a faith_n this_o article_n of_o religion_n god_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o so_o many_o have_v bring_v in_o damnable_a assertion_n about_o this_o point_n socinus_n do_v impudent_o say_v that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n deity_n be_v so_o absurd_a that_o the_o christian_a world_n will_v one_o day_n be_v so_o far_o inform_v as_o to_o be_v ashamed_a to_o believe_v such_o a_o thing_n yea_o to_o hear_v such_o a_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o word_n trinity_n may_v be_v in_o time_n as_o much_o abhor_a as_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o mass_n fly_v from_o such_o person_n as_o those_o that_o have_v a_o spiritual_a plague_n this_o have_v be_v so_o often_o clear_v by_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n that_o now_o there_o need_v no_o more_o disputation_n in_o it_o we_o must_v not_o always_o be_v prove_v but_o we_o must_v at_o last_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a remember_v your_o baptism_n it_o be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n these_o you_o be_v with_o the_o same_o faith_n to_o acknowledge_v to_o these_o you_o be_v equal_o consecrate_v happy_a use_v 2._o be_v all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v christ_n then_o how_o happy_a be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o be_v admit_v into_o some_o co-partnership_n with_o all_o this_o blessedness_n for_o although_o though_o none_o but_o christ_n as_o you_o hear_v can_v say_v all_o i_o be_v thy_o essential_o yet_o every_o godly_a man_n be_v make_v a_o co●heir_n with_o christ_n he_o may_v by_o fruition_n and_o enjoyment_n say_v so_o rome_n 8._o oh_o the_o infinite_a treasure_n of_o that_o expression_n a_o son_n and_o co-heir_n with_o christ_n whatsoever_o christ_n be_v heir_n to_o we_o be_v also_o coheir_n with_o he_o only_o here_o be_v the_o difference_n quod_fw-la christus_fw-la natura_fw-la nos_fw-la gratia_fw-la what_o christ_n be_v by_o nature_n that_o we_o be_v by_o grace_n why_o then_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n so_o often_o deject_v and_o cast_v down_o they_o consider_v not_o how_o rich_a how_o honour_v how_o abound_v they_o be_v all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v all_o that_o chtist_n have_v be_v they_o for_o their_o good_a and_o advantage_n and_o this_o deed_n of_o gift_n god_n make_v when_o he_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o they_o to_o be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o to_o be_v his_o people_n by_o this_o mean_n paul_n can_v triumph_v and_o say_v i_o have_v all_o thing_n i_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n phil._n 4._o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v never_o establish_v and_o confirm_v till_o they_o be_v anchor_v here_o they_o be_v toss_v up_o and_o down_o as_o so_o many_o wave_n like_o the_o wicked_a man_n of_o the_o world_n who_o live_v by_o sense_n and_o have_v no_o bottom_n or_o rock_n to_o stand_v upon_o for_o this_o end_n it_o be_v that_o god_n eithet_n take_v away_o earthly_a comfort_n or_o cast_v in_o many_o root_n of_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n in_o every_o condition_n that_o you_o may_v know_v your_o treasure_n be_v in_o god_n and_o christ_n not_o in_o these_o earthly_a content_n use_v 3_o be_v christ_n thus_o partaker_n essential_o of_o all_o that_o god_n have_v then_o take_v we_o heed_v how_o we_o refuse_v he_o speak_v for_o god_n be_v not_o only_o with_o he_o but_o in_o he_o speok_v as_o god_n say_v concern_v the_o angel_n that_o lead_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v heed_n how_o they_o do_v provoke_v he_o for_o his_o name_n be_v in_o he_o exo._n 23.21_o 4._o how_o complete_a and_o
variety_n and_o difference_n in_o gift_n in_o grace_n in_o office_n in_o outward_a conditionr_n yet_o they_o must_v all_o be_v one_o 3._o you_o have_v the_o pattern_n of_o this_o unity_n as_o thou_o father_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o 4._o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o this_o unity_n that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o 5._o the_o benefit_n and_o fruit_n of_o this_o union_n that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v thuu_fw-mi haste_n send_v i_o i_o shall_v first_o consider_v the_o benefit_n pray_v for_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o and_o observe_v that_o union_n rmongst_a the_o godly_a be_v of_o so_o great_a necessity_n and_o consequence_n that_o christ_n do_v in_o their_o behalf_n principal_o and_o chief_o pray_v for_o this_o doct._n though_o in_o this_o unity_n be_v include_v grace_n and_o sanctification_n yet_o that_o which_o be_v express_o mention_v be_v their_o agreement_n i_o have_v handle_v this_o union_n as_o it_o relate_v to_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n from_o v_o 11._o i_o shall_v pursue_v from_o this_o text_n union_n among_o believer_n themselves_o godly_a and_o because_o our_o saviour_n do_v enlarge_v himself_o about_o it_o i_o shall_v also_o insist_v upon_o it_o to_o open_v this_o truth_n consider_v 1._o that_o the_o be_v a_o twofold_a unity_n or_o union_n among_o the_o gtdly_a invisible_a and_o visible_a invisible_a unity_n be_v that_o whereby_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n by_o the_o spirit_n on_o god_n part_n and_o faith_n on_o our_o part_n invisible_a do_v receive_v spiritual_a life_n and_o increase_n in_o which_o some_o believer_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o several_a member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o christ_n to_o the_o head_n because_o of_o that_o spiritual_a life_n and_o motion_n they_o receive_v from_o he_o this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o visible_a union_n and_o without_o this_o though_o we_o may_v be_v outward_o of_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o do_v indeed_o receive_v no_o save_a advantage_n by_o christ_n of_o this_o union_n the_o text_n speak_v not_o because_o it_o be_v such_o a_o union_n that_o the_o world_n see_v it_o may_v thereby_o be_v induce_v to_o believe_v therefore_o 2._o there_o be_v a_o visible_a union_n whereby_o believer_n do_v outward_o and_o visible_o express_v their_o compact_a nearness_n to_o one_o another_o and_o so_o those_o particular_a church_n of_o corinth_n and_o ephesus_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o external_a union_n as_o well_o as_o internal_a for_o not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o also_o by_o the_o ordinance_n we_o have_v fellowship_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o one_o another_o of_o this_o visible_a unity_n the_o text_n speak_v and_o this_o be_v make_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o bring_v the_o world_n to_o believe_v whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a difference_n of_o opinion_n and_o sad_a rent_n and_o sect_n in_o religion_n be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o confirm_v man_n in_o their_o impiety_n and_o to_o think_v there_o be_v no_o truth_n and_o no_o religion_n at_o all_o visible_a in_o the_o second_o place_n this_o visible_a union_n do_v diffuse_v itself_o in_o many_o branch_n as_o 1._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o profession_n when_o they_o all_o believe_v and_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n this_o must_v be_v lay_v as_o the_o foundation_n of_o unity_n for_o unity_n in_o error_n and_o idolatry_n or_o false_a way_n be_v not_o peace_n but_o a_o faction_n or_o conspiracy_n this_o unity_n of_o faith_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o many_o unity_n the_o apostle_n mention_v eph._n 4.5_o phil._n 2.2_o they_o be_v exhort_v to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o the_o apostle_n notable_o press_v this_o 1_o cor._n 1.10_o that_o they_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o the_o same_o judgement_n what_o a_o sad_a breach_n than_o have_v the_o devil_n make_v upon_o god_n people_n when_o there_o be_v so_o few_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o do_v judge_v the_o same_o thing_n but_o as_o you_o hear_v it_o must_v be_v a_o sameness_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o the_o jew_n they_o be_v one_o among_o themselves_o the_o mahometan_n be_v one_o the_o papist_n be_v so_o one_o that_o they_o boast_v of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n now_o though_o this_o shall_v be_v grant_v though_o they_o have_v a_o thousand_o division_n among_o themselves_o yet_o unless_o it_o be_v unity_n in_o the_o faith_n unity_n in_o the_o sound_a doctrine_n it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o 2._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o affection_n and_o love_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o outward_o one_o to_o another_o love_n be_v call_v the_o affection_n of_o union_n and_o make_v a_o man_n to_o be_v the_o object_n he_o love_v as_o much_o as_o his_o own_o and_o we_o see_v the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n abundant_o fulfil_v in_o this_o respect_n concern_v the_o primitive_a christian_n for_o act._n 4_o 32._o it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o of_o one_o soul_n those_o thousand_o of_o believer_n be_v as_o if_o they_o have_v but_o one_o heart_n and_o soul_n among_o they_o and_o thus_o in_o tertullia_n time_n the_o heathen_n do_v admire_v at_o the_o love_n christian_n have_v to_o one_o another_o our_o saviour_n make_v it_o a_o sure_a sign_n of_o discipleship_n then_o if_o they_o wrought_v miracle_n joh._n 3.35_o 3._o this_o union_n be_v see_v in_o the_o public_a worship_n and_o ordinance_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v as_o god_n say_v of_o man_n at_o first_o it_o be_v not_o good_a he_o shall_v be_v alone_o so_o it_o be_v true_a of_o every_o believer_n he_o be_v not_o to_o serve_v god_n alone_o to_o think_v that_o a_o private_a religion_n be_v enough_o therefore_o you_o have_v the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n act._n 2.1_o act._n 5.12_o how_o they_o meet_v with_o one_o accord_n in_o one_o place_n and_o that_o to_o have_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o public_a ordinance_n they_o pray_v together_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n together_o and_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o 17._o show_v how_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n do_v declare_v their_o union_n and_o communion_n one_o with_o another_o hence_o heb._n 10.25_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v those_o who_o manner_n it_o be_v not_o to_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o this_o visible_a union_n of_o believer_n in_o church-ordinance_n be_v their_o high_a beauty_n and_o their_o chief_a advantage_n hence_o david_n profess_v his_o ravishment_n herein_o how_o beautiful_a be_v thy_o tabernacle_n o_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o psa_n 110._o it_o be_v call_v the_o beauty_n of_o holiness_n and_o hag._n 2._o this_o temple_n be_v say_v to_o be_v more_o glorious_a than_o ever_o the_o former_a be_v and_o that_o because_o of_o christ_n presence_n therein_o preach_v and_o reform_v all_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n when_o the_o ark_n be_v take_v phinehas_n his_o daughter_n cry_v the_o glory_n be_v depart_v from_o israel_n hence_o the_o ordinance_n even_o in_o this_o life_n be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o of_o god_n glorious_a presence_n therein_o david_n when_o banish_v psa_n 63.2_o long_v to_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o he_o have_v see_v it_o in_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o then_o it_o be_v our_o great_a profit_n and_o advantage_n for_o god_n presence_n be_v promise_v to_o these_o so_o that_o the_o christian_a ordinance_n be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o large_a dispensation_n of_o god_n gift_n and_o grace_n here_o then_o otherwise_o 4._o this_o unity_n be_v see_v in_o that_o public_a order_n and_o government_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v in_o his_o church_n as_o god_n have_v appoint_v some_o to_o be_v shepherd_n and_o to_o govern_v so_z other_o to_o hear_v and_o obey_v he_o have_v command_v admonition_n and_o in_o some_o case_n sharp_a reproof_n and_o where_o obstinacy_n be_v to_o cast_v out_o now_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o have_v unity_n in_o this_o respect_n for_o as_o 1_o cor_fw-la 14._o it_o appear_v private_a christian_n do_v difficult_o keep_v within_o their_o sphere_n every_o member_n will_v be_v a_o eye_n as_o the_o apostle_n there_o charge_v so_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o meet_v with_o a_o obedient_a ear_n though_o to_o a_o wise_a and_o godly_a reproof_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o bless_a thing_n as_o to_o have_v unity_n of_o faith_n so_o also_o of_o order_n that_o be_v to_o see_v every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n with_o its_o relation_n in_o a_o harmonious_a way_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o body_n though_o they_o be_v heterogeneal_a part_n yet_o they_o all_o harmonious_o consociate_v in_o their_o operation_n this_o unity_n of_o order_n be_v like_o the_o nerve_n and_o ligament_n to_o this_o spiritual_a society_n 5._o this_o
unity_n be_v see_v in_o the_o sympathize_v that_o all_o believer_n have_v one_o with_o another_o and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o mourning_n and_o rejoice_v in_o respect_n of_o those_o that_o mourn_v so_o we_o be_v to_o weep_v and_o mourn_v with_o they_o we_o be_v to_o bear_v one_o another_o burden_n we_o be_v to_o be_v affect_v with_o the_o church_n calamity_n as_o be_v also_o of_o the_o body_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n lay_v upon_o he_o 2_o cor._n 11.28_o who_o be_v afflict_v and_o he_o do_v not_o burn_v the_o same_o proportionable_o be_v to_o be_v in_o every_o believer_n therefore_o this_o unity_n of_o believer_n shall_v be_v vigorous_a this_o way_n what_o evil_n what_o exercise_n befall_v other_o they_o shall_v be_v affect_v with_o they_o as_o their_o own_o this_o discover_v they_o be_v lively_a member_n of_o the_o body_n for_o if_o christ_n though_o in_o heaven_n be_v sensible_a of_o the_o persecution_n do_v by_o paul_n against_o the_o church_n say_v why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o how_o much_o rather_o shall_v every_o particular_a member_n account_v the_o temptation_n of_o other_o as_o his_o own_o as_o it_o be_v thus_o for_o mourning_n so_o also_o for_o rejoice_v there_o ought_v to_o be_v such_o a_o unity_n among_o believer_n that_o we_o be_v to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o gift_n grace_n and_o good_a thing_n that_o other_o have_v as_o if_o they_o be_v our_o own_o but_o o_o the_o self-love_n the_o envy_n the_o repine_n that_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v in_o one_o godly_a man_n against_o another_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o lust_v to_o envy_v say_v the_o apostle_n even_o in_o believer_n hence_o be_v those_o daily_a exhortation_n against_o grudge_n murmur_n and_o envying_n one_o against_o another_o and_o these_o be_v make_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n because_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v and_o enliven_v there_o be_v joy_n peace_n and_o long-suffering_a all_o grace_n contrary_a to_o such_o unquiet_a distemper_n now_o this_o be_v very_o difficult_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o those_o part_n and_o gift_n which_o obscure_a thou_o and_o those_o good_a thing_n in_o other_o that_o seem_v to_o hinder_v thou_o yet_o to_o rejoice_v and_o bless_v god_n for_o they_o as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o thy_o own_o self_n but_o this_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a unity_n will_v enable_v thou_o thereunto_o neither_o be_v the_o sun_n or_o air_n more_o requisite_a than_o this_o union_n no_o wonder_n if_o our_o saviour_n do_v thus_o affectionate_o pray_v for_o it_o 6._o this_o union_n be_v see_v in_o their_o mutual_a strive_v together_o in_o promote_a the_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n of_o christ_n they_o all_o have_v the_o same_o heart_n the_o same_o shoulder_n the_o same_o tongue_n to_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n they_o be_v like_o so_o many_o servant_n in_o the_o same_o house_n all_o promote_a and_o further_a their_o master_n work_n that_o as_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 3._o say_v all_o the_o officer_n be_v one_o he_o that_o plant_n and_o he_o that_o water_n be_v one_o because_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o end_n which_o be_v to_o set_v forward_o the_o work_n of_o god_n thus_o it_o be_v here_o though_o there_o be_v never_o so_o much_o variety_n in_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n and_o condition_n of_o god_n people_n yet_o they_o be_v all_o one_o in_o this_o work_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v the_o end_n they_o all_o look_v upon_o thus_o you_o see_v in_o how_o many_o particular_n this_o unity_n diffuse_v itself_o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o the_o invisible_a unity_n do_v extend_v itself_o far_o than_o the_o visible_a for_o this_o be_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n only_o iii_o but_o that_o to_o the_o invisible_a so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o be_v a_o unity_n between_o all_o believer_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v with_o enoch_n abel_n abraham_n and_o all_o that_o of_o old_a ever_o be_v this_o be_v believe_v in_o that_o which_o usual_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n sometime_o there_o be_v add_v the_o one_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o be_v believe_v and_o not_o see_v but_o by_o this_o it_o be_v that_o all_o the_o godly_a who_o have_v be_v be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v make_v up_o one_o body_n all_o christ_n sheep_n will_v have_v one_o sheepfold_a so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o invisible_a union_n where_o there_o can_v be_v a_o visible_a one_o in_o the_o four_o place_n concern_v this_o visible_a union_n for_o we_o make_v these_o all_o one_o you_o be_v to_o know_v some_o be_v of_o this_o unity_n both_o visible_o and_o invisible_o external_o and_o internal_o and_o in_o appearance_n now_o such_o only_a who_o be_v both_o way_n of_o this_o unity_n enjoy_v god_n be_v indeed_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o receive_v benefit_n by_o he_o but_o the_o other_o be_v only_o in_o name_n and_o title_n like_o a_o wither_a branch_n in_o a_o tree_n or_o a_o artificial_a eye_n or_o leg_n which_o though_o join_v to_o the_o body_n yet_o receive_v no_o life_n or_o nourishment_n thereof_o think_v it_o not_o therefore_o enough_o to_o be_v of_o this_o unity_n many_o have_v glory_v and_o rest_v on_o this_o that_o they_o be_v of_o such_o and_o such_o a_o church_n yet_o their_o condemnation_n be_v great_a than_o those_o of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n in_o the_o five_o place_n this_o unity_n therefore_o when_o it_o be_v true_a and_o advantageous_a do_v first_o terminate_v on_o christ_n and_o then_o descend_v to_o other_o hence_o it_o be_v add_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o there_o must_v be_v first_o a_o unity_n with_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o then_o it_o extend_v to_o other_o member_n so_o that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o foundation_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o there_o must_v be_v first_o a_o incorporate_n into_o christ_n he_o that_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n be_v make_v one_o spirit_n with_o he_o last_o this_o union_n visible_a be_v not_o interrupt_v in_o some_o effect_n of_o it_o by_o distance_n of_o place_n for_o in_o regard_n of_o prayer_n there_o every_o one_o be_v remember_v when_o the_o churth_n be_v pray_v for_o so_o that_o the_o poor_a christian_a who_o can_v pray_v for_o himself_o yet_o have_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n what_o a_o comfortable_a refresh_n shall_v this_o be_v to_o every_o godly_a soul_n use_v of_o exhortation_n to_o lay_v to_o heart_n more_o the_o division_n difference_n and_o breach_n that_o be_v among_o the_o godly_a learn_v of_o christ_n here_o to_o be_v affect_v with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o and_o again_o he_o commend_v peace_n to_o they_o we_o be_v command_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o jerusalem_n god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o peace_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n believer_n be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o peace_n take_v heed_n of_o be_v a_o jonah_n in_o this_o ship_n let_v not_o thy_o pride_n thy_o conceit_n thy_o discontent_n make_v thou_o tear_v and_o rend_v the_o church_n that_o jerusalem_n may_v be_v as_o a_o city_n compact_v together_o sermon_n cxiii_o of_o unity_n among_o christian_n the_o benefit_n and_o necessity_n of_o it_o and_o the_o mischief_n of_o division_n john_n 17.21_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o etc._n etc._n we_o have_v declare_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o unity_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o excellency_n benefit_n and_o necessity_n of_o union_n among_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o mischief_n of_o breach_n and_o difference_n among_o they_o first_o the_o excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o vehement_a and_o affectionate_a prayer_n for_o it_o make_v by_o our_o saviour_n it_o when_o he_o put_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n together_o he_o pitch_v upon_o this_o as_o the_o most_o eminent_a that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o and_o although_o our_o saviour_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n in_o measure_n and_o so_o can_v not_o vain_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n often_o yet_o within_o a_o little_a space_n he_o do_v four_o time_n mention_v this_o vers_n 21_o 22_o 23._o now_o certain_o that_o thing_n which_o our_o saviour_n in_o who_o the_o treasure_n of_o all_o wisdom_n be_v do_v much_o press_n and_o urge_v must_v needs_o be_v of_o very_o great_a moment_n here_o be_v not_o pardon_v of_o their_o sin_n justification_n adoption_n glorification_n mention_v but_o unity_n as_o if_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n do_v consist_v in_o this_o obtain_v this_o and_o you_o have_v all_o and_o our_o saviour_n as_o he_o pray_v then_o so_o he_o preach_v love_n and_o unity_n so_o that_o whereas_o in_o matter_n of_o justification_n he_o commend_v faith_n above_o
that_o we_o may_v say_v as_o musculus_fw-la there_o be_v a_o good_a schism_n and_o a_o bad_a schism_n a_o good_a schism_n be_v when_o we_o divide_v malè_fw-la unita_fw-la thing_n evil_o join_v a_o bad_a when_o benè_fw-la unita_fw-la thing_n well_o unite_v 2._o if_o there_o be_v many_o corruption_n in_o government_n and_o administration_n yet_o thou_o be_v not_o to_o make_v sinful_a breach_n and_o rent_n for_o these_o do_v plus_fw-fr perturbare_fw-la infirmos_fw-la bonos_fw-es quam_fw-la corrigere_fw-la animosos_fw-la malos_fw-la as_o austin_n well_o therefore_o two_o thing_n thou_o have_v to_o do_v first_o as_o thy_o call_n and_o relation_n be_v so_o to_o reprove_v and_o oppose_v the_o corruption_n that_o abound_v thus_o the_o prophet_n of_o old_a and_o christ_n with_o his_o apostle_n they_o do_v with_o great_a zeal_n rebuke_v the_o corruption_n then_o prevail_v and_o although_o carnal_a and_o athiestical_a politician_n call_v this_o schism_n and_o faction_n yet_o this_o be_v to_o condemn_v the_o generation_n of_o all_o the_o godly_a prophet_n in_o their_o age_n and_o to_o justify_v ahab_n as_o if_o not_o he_o but_o elijah_n have_v indeed_o be_v the_o troubler_n of_o israel_n 2._o when_o you_o have_v thus_o do_v your_o duty_n and_o still_o corruption_n be_v suffer_v leave_v your_o complaint_n with_o god_n who_o have_v promise_v at_o last_o to_o take_v all_o scandal_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n patient_o sigh_v and_o groan_v under_o that_o burden_n for_o we_o may_v have_v a_o sinful_a impatience_n in_o this_o kind_n as_o elijah_n in_o part_n have_v and_o those_o disciple_n who_o will_v needs_o have_v fire_n immediate_o consume_v the_o samaritan_n because_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v christ_n last_o to_o prevent_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n order_n take_v heed_n of_o pride_n ambition_n and_o seek_v great_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v report_v that_o most_o of_o those_o who_o make_v the_o great_a rent_n in_o the_o church_n do_v it_o upon_o discontent_n miss_v of_o that_o preferment_n they_o look_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o diotrephes_n who_o love_v preeminency_n make_v great_a division_n even_o the_o disciple_n begin_v to_o quarrel_v with_o one_o another_o de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la who_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a therefore_o do_v our_o saviour_n so_o often_o press_v humility_n and_o enjoin_v every_o one_o to_o become_v like_o a_o little_a child_n the_o last_o particular_a wherein_o division_n be_v among_o the_o godly_a be_v in_o their_o particular_a civil_a deportment_n quarrelling_n and_o those_o be_v the_o quarrelling_n and_o wrangling_n the_o apostle_n james_n speak_v against_o now_o to_o prevent_v these_o first_o remove_v the_o cause_n kill_v the_o serpent_n in_o its_o egg_n and_o that_o be_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o apostle_n ask_v from_o whence_o come_v jar_n and_o fight_n be_v it_o not_o from_o your_o lust_n james_n 4.1_o there_o be_v war_a within_o against_o your_o own_o soul_n first_o and_o then_o one_o with_o another_o dry_v up_o this_o fountain_n of_o lust_n and_o then_o the_o stream_n will_v quick_o run_v no_o more_o now_o any_o kind_n of_o lust_n unmortified_a be_v spark_n great_a enough_o to_o set_v the_o church_n on_o fire_n a_o covetous_a lust_n when_o man_n be_v immoderate_o give_v to_o the_o world_n that_o cause_v great_a discord_n as_o the_o philistines_n and_o isaac_n strive_v about_o the_o well_o till_o at_o last_o isaac_n come_v to_o a_o place_n which_o he_o call_v rehoboth_n that_o be_v rome_n gen._n 26.22_o thus_o here_o on_o earth_n we_o fall_v out_o about_o earthly_a thing_n because_o the_o creature_n be_v too_o scant_o to_o give_v content_a to_o all_o but_o in_o heaven_n there_o will_v be_v room_n enough_o so_o a_o proud_a envious_a lust_n that_o break_v all_o union_n insomuch_o that_o till_o there_o be_v a_o mortification_n of_o covet_v within_o there_o will_v never_o be_v union_n without_o we_o may_v mention_v the_o excellency_n of_o this_o union_n to_o prevent_v heat_n but_o that_o have_v be_v do_v already_o let_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o be_v as_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v to_o put_v this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n into_o practice_n peace_n be_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n and_o god_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o christ_n be_v call_v our_o peace_n see_v christ_n pray_v for_o it_o we_o see_v it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o sermon_n all_o the_o irenicall_a book_n can_v do_v any_o good_a till_o god_n give_v one_o heart_n be_v importunate_a therefore_o with_o god_n and_o strive_v with_o he_o for_o this_o unspeakable_a mercy_n sermon_n cxvii_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o person_n and_o unity_n of_o essence_n in_o the_o deity_n against_o the_o socinian_o john_n 17.21_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o the_o second_o thing_n considerable_a in_o this_o text_n be_v the_o pattern_n and_o example_n of_o unity_n it_o be_v not_o all_o kind_n of_o unity_n he_o pray_v for_o but_o that_o which_o be_v the_o most_o absolute_a and_o perfect_a even_o such_o unity_n as_o be_v between_o the_o father_n and_o son_n not_o as_o if_o this_o do_v denote_v equality_n but_o similitude_n only_o because_o this_o pattern_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o apostle_n unity_n i_o shall_v not_o repeat_v what_o then_o be_v deliver_v only_o this_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a interpretation_n of_o this_o be_v of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n the_o ancient_n they_o understand_v this_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o if_o the_o unity_n here_o speak_v be_v homeousial_a but_o calvin_n say_v huc_fw-la eos_fw-la abripuit_fw-la contentio_fw-la cum_fw-la arianis_fw-la the_o heat_n of_o dispute_n with_o the_o arian_n carry_v they_o off_o from_o the_o sense_n so_o that_o he_o give_v a_o second_o interpretation_n make_v the_o speech_n to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o the_o son_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o of_o his_o mediatorship_n for_o by_o that_o he_o be_v make_v one_o with_o god_n the_o father_n and_o one_o with_o we_o for_o whereas_o before_o christ_n mediatorship_n there_o be_v a_o miserable_a confusion_n and_o dissipation_n of_o mankind_n god_n the_o father_n against_o man_n and_o man_n against_o god_n through_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o happy_a unity_n obtain_v so_o that_o in_o calvin_n judgement_n this_o unity_n be_v that_o of_o a_o mediator_n whereby_o christ_n as_o head_n of_o his_o church_n be_v join_v to_o we_o do_v thereby_o also_o join_v we_o to_o the_o father_n in_o this_o sense_n also_o he_o explain_v that_o know_a place_n john_n 10._o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o neither_o may_v we_o think_v as_o some_o have_v calumniate_v that_o calvin_n do_v judaize_n or_o arianize_v for_o though_o he_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o place_n yet_o otherwise_o he_o do_v firm_o propugn_v the_o true_a doctrine_n about_o christ_n divine_a nature_n but_o there_o be_v no_o solid_a ground_n to_o make_v these_o interpretation_n distinct_a for_o one_o do_v necessary_o suppose_v the_o other_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o head_n to_o make_v we_o one_o with_o the_o father_n unless_o he_o be_v god_n and_o so_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o nature_n must_v be_v understand_v as_o the_o foundation_n so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o word_n the_o distinction_n of_o their_o person_n by_o their_o peculiar_a propriety_n consider_v and_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o nature_n their_o personal_a propriety_n be_v father_n and_o son_n the_o oneness_n of_o their_o nature_n be_v in_o those_o word_n thou_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o from_o whence_o observe_v that_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v two_o distinct_a person_n yet_o one_o in_o nature_n and_o essence_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o in_o other_o place_n be_v make_v the_o three_o person_n but_o of_o these_o two_o only_a because_o they_o alone_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o text._n to_o open_v this_o consider_v some_o thing_n in_o general_a and_o then_o what_o be_v imply_v in_o their_o peculiar_a relation_n relative_o 1._o that_o god_n be_v absolute_o know_v as_o god_n 2._o relative_o as_o in_o these_o three_o person_n god_n absolute_o consider_v may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n relative_o only_a by_o the_o scripture_n and_o revelation_n by_o the_o creature_n we_o only_o can_v come_v to_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n maker_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o that_o this_o god_n be_v distinguish_v by_o three_o personal_a propriety_n be_v not_o matter_n of_o investigation_n but_o faith_n only_o therefore_o howsoever_o some_o learned_a man_n have_v endeavour_v to_o illustrate_v this_o mystery_n from_o humane_a philosopher_n especial_o
resplendent_a beam_n thereof_o proclaim_v its_o presence_n this_o be_v excellent_o set_v down_o joh._n 14.20_o 21._o at_o that_o day_n you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o and_o ver_fw-la 21._o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o manifest_v myself_o to_o he_o in_o the_o second_o place_n though_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o invisible_o and_o spiritual_o yet_o he_o be_v true_o and_o real_o and_o operative_o in_o we_o so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o fancy_n or_o delusion_n as_o some_o nonentity_n or_o mere_a notion_n of_o melancholy_a man_n no_o as_o christ_n be_v a_o real_a christ_n so_o he_o do_v real_o live_v and_o dwell_v in_o we_o if_o nothing_o be_v real_a but_o what_o be_v corporeal_a than_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v no_o real_a substance_n then_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a fancy_n and_o notion_n likewise_o but_o as_o christ_n be_v real_a and_o the_o soul_n be_v real_a so_o be_v christ_n dwelling_n and_o live_v in_o it_o real_a yea_o it_o be_v so_o real_a that_o corporal_a thing_n be_v say_v to_o have_v no_o reality_n at_o all_o comparative_o thus_o christ_n joh._n 15.1_o i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o joh._n 6.55_o 56._o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o now_o why_o do_v christ_n say_v his_o body_n be_v meat_n indeed_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v corporal_o but_o opposite_o to_o corporal_a food_n the_o very_a food_n we_o eat_v be_v not_o meat_n comparative_o to_o christ_n for_o our_o body_n feed_v on_o that_o and_o yet_o perish_v they_o have_v not_o life_n always_o abide_v in_o they_o but_o who_o so_o have_v christ_n in_o he_o he_o can_v no_o more_o perish_v then_o christ_n himself_o christ_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o life_n indeed_o the_o godly_a then_o find_v and_o know_v this_o life_n and_o dwell_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o real_a solid_a thing_n and_o therefore_o do_v though_o not_o corporal_o yet_o spiritual_o perceive_v it_o and_o know_v it_o to_o be_v more_o real_a than_o their_o bodily_a life_n and_o action_n it_o be_v not_o less_o real_a and_o true_a because_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a therefore_o that_o which_o on_o christ_n part_n make_v he_o to_o be_v in_o we_o viz._n his_o spirit_n that_o be_v real_a and_o that_o which_o on_o our_o part_n receive_v christ_n and_o whereby_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o viz._n faith_n that_o be_v also_o a_o lively_a grace_n therefore_o though_o we_o walk_v not_o by_o bodily_a sense_n but_o by_o faith_n yet_o the_o thing_n of_o faith_n have_v as_o real_a and_o lively_a subsistence_n in_o the_o soul_n as_o bodily_a object_n can_v affect_v the_o body_n 3._o consider_v how_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v in_o his_o people_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n represent_v several_a way_n 1._o christ_n be_v in_o we_o by_o way_n of_o union_n particular_o so_o as_o to_o be_v make_v one_o mystical_a person_n with_o we_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v large_a in_o discover_v this_o because_o i_o have_v touch_v on_o it_o heretofore_o only_o the_o first_o step_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o be_v by_o unite_n of_o himself_o to_o we_o for_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n estrange_v from_o he_o and_o lie_v as_o so_o many_o lump_n of_o earth_n devoid_a and_o destitute_a of_o all_o spiritual_a life_n and_o motion_n till_o christ_n unite_v himself_o to_o we_o so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v god_n wonderful_a power_n to_o call_v those_o dry_a bone_n and_o unite_v they_o together_o thus_o it_o be_v also_o his_o admirable_a power_n to_o unite_v himself_o to_o a_o believer_n christ_n do_v not_o stay_v till_o we_o first_o unite_v ourselves_o to_o he_o but_o he_o join_v himself_o first_o to_o we_o and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o step_n of_o christ_n save_a grace_n in_o we_o 2._o christ_n be_v in_o we_o so_o that_o thereby_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o person_n not_o only_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n himself_o be_v in_o we_o as_o gal._n 2.20_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o so_o eph._n 3.17_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n so_o that_o this_o king_n of_o glory_n do_v not_o only_o bring_v his_o rich_a ornament_n and_o hang_n to_o beautify_v the_o soul_n but_o he_o himself_o also_o in_o his_o own_o person_n reside_v there_o not_o indeed_o corporal_o as_o you_o hear_v but_o spiritual_o for_o though_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n yet_o that_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o distance_n of_o place_n that_o take_v away_o from_o faith_n no_o more_o then_o of_o time_n but_o as_o future_a thing_n be_v present_a to_o heaven_n so_o be_v remote_a thing_n local_o present_a to_o it_o even_o as_o to_o the_o eye_n some_o object_n though_o many_o mile_n distant_a be_v present_a faith_n therefore_o receive_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n himself_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o soul_n but_o yet_o by_o faith_n it_o be_v true_a many_o divine_n affirm_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o be_v in_o we_o but_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o relate_v even_o to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o the_o grace_n flow_v from_o they_o 3._o christ_n be_v in_o his_o people_n by_o way_n of_o gracious_a operation_n as_o a_o powerful_a efficient_a which_o enable_v to_o all_o those_o holy_a and_o divine_a action_n the_o godly_a perform_v joh._n 15._o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o as_o the_o branch_n without_o the_o vine_n can_v bring_v forth_o any_o fruit_n do_v not_o christ_n daily_o move_v and_o breathe_v upon_o the_o soul_n it_o will_v always_o work_v in_o a_o carnal_a and_o humane_a manner_n paul_n say_v he_o no_o long_o live_v but_o christ_n in_o he_o gal._n 2.20_o for_o paul_n of_o himself_o and_o in_o his_o own_o corruption_n will_v follow_v the_o boast_v of_o the_o flesh_n persevere_v the_o desire_n thereof_o do_v not_o christ_n quicken_v and_o sanctify_v he_o 4._o christ_n be_v in_o we_o sacramental_o that_o be_v in_o and_o by_o the_o right_a use_n of_o that_o ordinance_n he_o be_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n present_a to_o the_o believer_n therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 10._o and_o although_o joh_n 6._o the_o eat_a and_o drink_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o there_o mean_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o of_o faith_n in_o the_o general_a for_o it_o be_v make_v necessary_a to_o every_o man_n that_o will_v have_v eternal_a life_n yet_o by_o that_o expression_n be_v see_v the_o intimate_a incorporation_n of_o the_o godly_a with_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v a_o more_o sensible_a visible_a assurance_n of_o such_o a_o presence_n whether_o christ_n presence_n sacramental_o be_v other_o than_o his_o presence_n by_o a_o promise_n be_v not_o here_o to_o be_v dispute_v certain_o if_o the_o presence_n differ_v not_o yet_o the_o manner_n of_o confirm_v and_o assure_v of_o it_o do_v otherwise_o sacrament_n will_v be_v seal_n of_o the_o promise_n in_o vain_a and_o the_o promise_n itself_o will_v be_v enough_o and_o the_o enjoy_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o promise_n will_v be_v enough_o without_o make_v use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o that_o be_v whole_o needless_a we_o i_o shall_v not_o enlarge_v on_o this_o point_n further_o but_o come_v we_o to_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o this_o be_v the_o great_a necessary_a thing_n to_o find_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o for_o either_o the_o devil_n and_o sin_n live_v in_o we_o we_o no_o long_o live_v but_o sin_n and_o satan_n or_o else_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n be_v in_o we_o and_o it_o be_v good_a to_o observe_v what_o be_v the_o evidence_n and_o demonstration_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o 1._o in_o whosoever_o christ_n be_v he_o be_v make_v a_o new_a creature_n old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o it_o be_v high_a blasphemy_n to_o say_v christ_n be_v in_o constant_a habitual_a wicked_a man_n no_o 2_o cor._n 5.17_o if_o any_o be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n now_o whosoever_o be_v in_o christ_n christ_n be_v also_o in_o he_o for_o they_o be_v mutual_a and_o reciprocal_a if_o therefore_o thou_o live_v in_o ignorance_n and_o profaneness_n conclude_v assure_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o thou_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n that_o enter_v into_o the_o swine_n and_o hurry_v they_o headlong_o into_o the_o sea_n thus_o still_o the_o devil_n do_v hurry_v many_o wicked_a man_n violent_o
and_o we_o in_o he_o by_o christ_n our_o mediator_n now_o if_o we_o have_v perfection_n and_o freedom_n from_o sin_n we_o need_v not_o a_o mediator_n so_o that_o as_o sacrament_n suppose_v imperfection_n in_o the_o communicant_a thus_o do_v also_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n he_o be_v in_o for_o if_o sin_n be_v not_o there_o how_o can_v he_o be_v in_o thou_o as_o reconcile_a thou_o to_o god_n as_o further_o sanctify_v thou_o as_o heal_v thy_o corruption_n therefore_o though_o in_o heaven_n as_o some_o say_v the_o mystical_a union_n of_o christ_n as_o head_n and_o the_o church_n as_o his_o body_n shall_v never_o cease_v yet_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n will_v cease_v he_o will_v not_o then_o be_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n nor_o shall_v we_o appear_v in_o he_o before_o god_n as_o mediate_a for_o we_o and_o cover_v our_o imperfection_n for_o than_o shall_v all_o be_v do_v away_o if_o then_o you_o observe_v how_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o people_n to_o what_o end_n you_o will_v conclude_v if_o i_o be_v such_o as_o i_o desire_v and_o groan_v to_o be_v than_o i_o do_v not_o need_n christ_n to_o be_v after_o that_o manner_n present_a in_o i_o at_o all_o 2._o though_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o yet_o they_o be_v in_o we_o as_o free_a agent_n communicate_v efficacy_n and_o power_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n and_o degree_n they_o please_v if_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o as_o a_o natural_a agent_n as_o the_o fire_n burn_v or_o the_o sun_n shine_v than_o he_o be_v also_o omnipotent_a will_v produce_v the_o great_a effect_n of_o grace_n possible_a in_o every_o believer_n because_o he_o be_v free_a and_o work_v according_a to_o his_o own_o council_n therefore_o he_o distribute_v grace_n as_o he_o please_v to_o some_o more_o to_o some_o less_o to_o none_o according_a to_o what_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o therefore_o though_o he_o may_v sanctify_v thou_o perfect_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o 3._o christ_n be_v not_o only_o in_o we_o thus_o free_o work_v in_o we_o but_o he_o have_v also_o bound_v and_o order_v the_o way_n of_o dispensation_n of_o his_o grace_n so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o put_v forth_o power_n in_o we_o after_o we_o be_v regenerate_v as_o if_o we_o be_v so_o many_o bruit_n creature_n but_o he_o require_v our_o co-operation_n and_o stir_v up_o of_o ourselves_o though_o in_o the_o initial_o of_o grace_n we_o be_v passive_a yet_o not_o in_o the_o progress_n and_o though_o it_o be_v christ_n that_o do_v daily_o quicken_v and_o preserve_v we_o yet_o we_o so_o distemper_v ourselves_o that_o some_o obstruction_n may_v be_v put_v to_o his_o operative_a presence_n as_o 1._o unbelief_n christ_n work_v in_o we_o yet_o so_o as_o by_o faith_n insomuch_o that_o we_o be_v not_o only_o justify_v by_o faith_n but_o we_o be_v in_o the_o progress_n of_o holiness_n sanctify_v by_o faith_n hence_o ephes_n 3.17_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n it_o be_v by_o faith_n we_o receive_v of_o the_o fullness_n and_o fatness_n of_o christ_n insomuch_o that_o where_o faith_n be_v not_o there_o christ_n do_v not_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n so_o that_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o mary_n if_o thou_o do_v believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n joh._n 10._o so_o if_o thou_o act_v faith_n and_o do_v put_v that_o on_o work_v than_o thou_o will_v both_o see_v and_o feel_v the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o christ_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o blame_n in_o christ_n his_o arm_n be_v not_o shorten_v this_o fountain_n will_v send_v forth_o such_o live_a stream_n it_o use_v to_o do_v only_o thou_o damme_v it_o up_o that_o it_o can_v run_v 2._o dulness_n and_o slothfulness_n this_o do_v much_o withstand_v christ_n operation_n the_o church_n in_o the_o canticle_n when_o she_o be_v lazy_a and_o pretend_a excuse_n not_o let_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o desire_v to_o come_v in_o make_v she_o at_o loss_n and_o be_v without_o his_o presence_n to_o her_o dear_a loss_n when_o christ_n therefore_o have_v quicken_v thou_o by_o prevent_v grace_n he_o have_v many_o time_n knock_v at_o the_o door_n and_o there_o have_v be_v no_o entrance_n this_o have_v great_o hinder_v the_o course_n and_o flourish_a of_o grace_n 3._o when_o thou_o give_v way_n to_o any_o gross_a sin_n this_o make_v christ_n withdraw_v so_o that_o little_o appear_v of_o he_o this_o be_v like_a winter_n to_o the_o tree_n that_o make_v all_o the_o sap_n withdraw_v to_o the_o root_n so_o that_o outward_o it_o appear_v a_o dead_a tree_n therefore_o cast_v away_o that_o abominable_a thing_n and_o then_o christ_n will_v come_v and_o work_v as_o former_o in_o thou_o 4._o christ_n may_v live_v and_o work_v in_o thou_o yet_o thou_o not_o be_v sensible_a and_o apprehensive_a of_o it_o it_o be_v christ_n but_o thou_o mistake_v he_o for_o something_o else_o as_o to_o the_o disciple_n when_o christ_n approach_v on_o the_o water_n to_o they_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o spirit_n at_o which_o they_o tremble_v not_o think_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o as_o mary_n magdalen_n think_v it_o have_v be_v the_o gardener_n when_o it_o be_v her_o lord_n thus_o the_o godly_a soul_n though_o christ_n at_o that_o very_a time_n do_v evident_o work_v in_o it_o yet_o through_o black_a distemper_n do_v not_o indeed_o judge_n christ_n to_o be_v there_o last_o christ_n sometime_o purposely_o withdraw_v his_o operative_a presence_n to_o try_v we_o that_o we_o may_v see_v our_o own_o infirmity_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o earnest_o prize_v his_o power_n and_o grace_n even_o as_o in_o the_o ship_n christ_n do_v on_o purpose_n sleep_n that_o the_o disciple_n be_v in_o extremity_n may_v the_o more_o earnest_o awaken_v he_o thus_o dormit_fw-la in_o te_fw-la christus_fw-la and_o as_o joseph_n to_o his_o brethren_n discover_v not_o who_o he_o be_v that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o welcome_a afterward_o and_o as_o for_o the_o second_o question_n how_o can_v christ_n be_v in_o thou_o and_o yet_o thou_o have_v no_o comfort_n and_o assurance_n you_o may_v see_v the_o possibility_n of_o that_o in_o christ_n himself_o who_o though_o so_o dear_o belove_v of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n be_v in_o he_o yet_o for_o the_o present_a those_o heavenly_a consolation_n be_v suspend_v use_v of_o instruction_n to_o demonstrate_v the_o happy_a condition_n of_o such_o as_o do_v believe_v they_o have_v god_n and_o christ_n within_o they_o though_o contemptible_a vessel_n yet_o they_o have_v a_o glorious_a treasure_n within_o though_o the_o cabinet_n have_v no_o excellency_n yet_o the_o jewel_n have_v take_v heed_n then_o of_o grieve_v such_o a_o noble_a guest_n within_o thou_o when_o a_o noble_a person_n enter_v into_o thy_o house_n how_o do_v it_o trouble_v thou_o that_o any_o offensive_a object_n shall_v come_v before_o he_o be_v thou_o as_o much_o careful_a leave_v any_o vain_a thought_n any_o evil_a action_n shall_v molest_v he_o sermon_n cxxix_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o believer_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o nature_n of_o it_o and_o what_o make_v to_o the_o perfect_a consummation_n of_o it_o john_n 17.23_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o those_o word_n contain_v the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o that_o former_a unity_n specify_v viz._n christ_n in_o we_o and_o the_o father_n in_o he_o for_o our_o saviour_n here_o speak_v of_o a_o threefold_a unity_n 1._o of_o the_o father_n with_o christ_n as_o mediator_n 2._o of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o head_n with_o his_o church_n 3._o of_o believer_n among_o themselves_o and_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n with_o believer_n as_o their_o head_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o member_n union_n and_o communion_n one_o with_o another_o now_o this_o be_v the_o last_o time_n our_o saviour_n repeat_v this_o particular_a of_o unity_n for_o our_o saviour_n do_v in_o this_o prayer_n for_o believer_n four_o time_n repeat_v it_o which_o demonstrate_v his_o exceed_a ardent_a affection_n for_o it_o only_o every_o expression_n seem_v to_o rise_v high_a than_o the_o former_a the_o first_o be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o 2._o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o 3._o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o 4._o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o and_o this_o be_v here_o mention_v now_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o will_v appear_v afterward_o only_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v sometime_o of_o perform_v and_o consummate_v a_o thing_n with_o perfection_n sometime_o it_o be_v use_v of_o sanctification_n and_o consecration_n heb._n 2.10_o heb._n 5.9_o heb._n 7.28_o now_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o all_o believer_n be_v consecrate_v and_o set_v apart_o as_o holy_a
myself_o that_o do_v not_o sole_o relate_v to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o even_o his_o divine_a also_o because_o the_o second_o person_n be_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n send_v into_o the_o world_n and_o to_o become_v man_n for_o we_o 2._o the_o father_n love_n be_v more_o remarkable_o see_v towards_o that_o particular_a humane_a nature_n which_o the_o second_o person_n assume_v in_o the_o sanctify_a and_o glorify_v of_o that_o with_o all_o suitableness_n and_o thus_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o way_n of_o purpose_n and_o decree_n in_o god_n even_o as_o it_o be_v to_o all_o the_o elect_a child_n of_o god_n for_o christ_n attribute_v i●_n to_o god_n the_o father_n that_o he_o have_v so_o fit_v his_o humane_a nature_n therefore_o he_o say_v a_o body_n thou_o have_v prepare_v i_o heb._n 10.5_o now_o several_a way_n do_v the_o father_n love_n appear_v herein_o as_o 1._o to_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v he_o to_o be_v a_o mediator_n to_o make_v he_o man_n for_o this_o purpose_n this_o be_v attribute_v whole_o to_o god_n the_o father_n hence_o 1_o pet._n 1.20_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v fore-ordained_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v not_o of_o mere_a necessity_n there_o be_v no_o compulsion_n to_o this_o but_o the_o father_n out_o of_o his_o mere_a good_a pleasure_n do_v thus_o ordain_v he_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v constant_o make_v the_o father_n mission_n or_o send_v of_o he_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o be_v our_o mediator_n 2._o this_o love_n of_o the_o father_n to_o he_o be_v see_v in_o take_v that_o particular_a humane_a nature_n rather_o than_o any_o other_o into_o a_o hypostatical_a union_n though_o christ_n do_v not_o take_v a_o individual_a humane_a personalize_v as_o man_n be_v yet_o he_o take_v a_o particular_a nature_n into_o a_o personal_a union_n with_o the_o godhead_n which_o be_v the_o great_a exaltation_n of_o man_n nature_n that_o can_v possible_o be_v imagine_v it_o be_v that_o great_a mystery_n which_o angel_n be_v continual_o search_v into_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v why_o the_o second_o person_n do_v take_v this_o particular_a nature_n rather_o than_o another_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v have_v sanctify_v here_o god_n mere_a love_n make_v the_o difference_n for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o high_a act_n of_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n that_o she_o rather_o than_o any_o other_o woman_n shall_v be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o christ_n so_o it_o be_v much_o more_o a_o great_a honour_n and_o expression_n of_o love_n that_o this_o humane_a nature_n rather_o than_o another_o be_v assume_v into_o personal_a union_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v that_o austin_n do_v so_o invincible_o press_v the_o pelagian_n with_o this_o argument_n from_o christ_n as_o man_n for_o say_v he_o if_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v choose_v not_o for_o any_o foresee_a merit_n or_o worth_n which_o may_v be_v in_o he_o but_o it_o be_v sole_o by_o the_o love_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n then_o much_o more_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o no_o mere_a man_n especial_o corrupt_v and_o defile_v can_v be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n upon_o the_o supposition_n or_o prescience_n of_o any_o good_a thing_n in_o man_n so_o that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v so_o mere_o from_o the_o favour_n and_o love_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v that_o gratia_fw-la singularis_fw-la to_o christ_n as_o man_n de_fw-fr quâ_fw-la fas_fw-la est_fw-la praedicare_fw-la sed_fw-la nefas_fw-la adjudicare_fw-la as_o austin_n 3._o the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n to_o christ_n in_o prepare_v he_o for_o mediator_n be_v see_v in_o the_o sanctify_a and_o endow_v of_o he_o with_o all_o holiness_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v a_o complete_a saviour_n for_o see_v it_o behove_v we_o to_o have_v such_o a_o high-priest_n as_o be_v holy_a and_o separate_a from_o sin_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v make_v man_n in_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n for_o he_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a ghost_n sanctify_v that_o corpulent_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n whereby_o there_o be_v not_o any_o form_n of_o or_o inclination_n to_o sin_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o he_o wr_v habitual_o and_o original_o holy_a now_o this_o be_v whole_o of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v thus_o anoint_v with_o all_o holiness_n and_o that_o he_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n without_o measure_n and_o therefore_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v infinite_o oblige_v to_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n who_o have_v pour_v more_o holiness_n into_o it_o then_o in_o all_o angel_n and_o man_n thus_o the_o father_n love_n be_v see_v in_o prepare_v he_o to_o be_v mediator_n and_o when_o he_o be_v thus_o appoint_v and_o in_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o office_n the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n be_v exceed_v great_a to_o he_o for_o 1._o you_o have_v the_o father_n in_o a_o most_o glorious_a manner_n from_o heaven_n own_v of_o he_o and_o give_v of_o that_o solemn_a approbation_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v what_o a_o glorious_a manifestation_n be_v here_o of_o the_o father_n love_n to_o he_o his_o love_n do_v rest_n on_o he_o yet_o so_o as_o thereby_o he_o make_v other_o beloved_a son_n in_o who_o also_o he_o be_v well-pleased_n even_o those_o that_o do_v believe_v in_o he_o this_o glorious_a testimony_n then_o give_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o father_n be_v make_v by_o some_o learned_a man_n part_v of_o that_o glory_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o v_o 22._o 2._o the_o father_n love_n be_v wonderful_o discover_v to_o he_o as_o mediator_n in_o that_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o those_o who_o be_v appoint_v to_o salvation_n insomuch_o that_o although_o the_o world_n think_v he_o forsake_v of_o god_n and_o smite_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n yea_o though_o christ_n himself_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o sense_n and_o feel_v expostulate_v with_o his_o father_n why_o he_o have_v forsake_v he_o yet_o even_o then_o be_v the_o father_n love_n most_o of_o all_o towards_o he_o joh._n 10.17_o therefore_o do_v my_o father_n love_v i_o because_o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n for_o my_o sheep_n here_o you_o see_v that_o although_o there_o be_v many_o other_o reason_n of_o the_o father_n love_n to_o he_o yet_o he_o instance_v in_o this_o wherein_o we_o will_v think_v god_n anger_n be_v for_o the_o present_a most_o display_v it_o be_v true_a this_o be_v urge_v by_o s●me_n that_o therefore_o christ_n can_v not_o suffer_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n in_o his_o soul_n neither_o can_v the_o father_n afflict_v he_o as_o for_o our_o sin_n for_o how_o can_v this_o be_v say_v they_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o father_n shall_v love_v he_o and_o yet_o be_v angry_a w●th_v he_o as_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a upon_o he_o but_o as_o god_n love_n towards_o christ_n can_v consist_v with_o that_o leave_v of_o he_o to_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n so_o also_o can_v the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n towards_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n well_o consist_v with_o that_o anger_n of_o he_o towards_o he_o as_o our_o surety_n and_o certain_o this_o very_a particular_a may_v much_o encourage_v the_o people_n of_o god_n for_o when_o they_o be_v solicitous_a about_o their_o acceptance_n with_o the_o father_n whether_o he_o will_v receive_v they_o into_o grace_n or_o no_o what_o a_o ready_a answer_n be_v this_o the_o father_n love_v christ_n because_o he_o will_v die_v for_o we_o because_o he_o will_v be_v crucify_v for_o we_o 3._o the_o father_n love_n towards_o he_o be_v especial_o see_v in_o exalt_v of_o he_o to_o all_o that_o honour_n and_o majesty_n the_o scripture_n so_o often_o mention_v that_o be_v the_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v true_a as_o god_n he_o have_v a_o right_a to_o all_o this_o glory_n before_o but_o then_o there_o be_v a_o manifestation_n of_o it_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o a_o real_a communication_n of_o such_o glory_n to_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o it_o have_v not_o before_o and_o his_o person_n be_v not_o admit_v into_o a_o more_o plenary_a and_o consummate_a possession_n of_o that_o glory_n of_o which_o there_o be_v but_o beginning_n before_o even_o as_o it_o be_v with_o david_n first_o he_o have_v a_o right_n give_v he_o to_o the_o kingdom_n but_o for_o the_o present_a he_o be_v in_o constant_a oppression_n and_o misery_n thus_o christ_n while_o have_v a_o right_a to_o
p_o 532._o l._n 35._o r._n antequam_fw-la p_o 543._o l._n 32._o add_v of_o they_o p._n 554._o l._n 30._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p_o 579._o l._n 35._o r._n sapiens_fw-la p._n 581._o l._n 19_o r._n room_n p._n 590._o l._n 14._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 600._o l_o 40._o r._n abailardus_n l._n 53._o r._n noveris_fw-la p._n 615._o l._n 21._o r._n darkness_n p._n 617._o l._n 20_o r._n diligent_a p._n 64●_n l._n 23._o r._n be_v love_v p_o 644._o l._n 17_o deal_n day_n of_o his_o suffering_n p_o 646._o l._n 39_o r_o when_o p._n 670._o l._n 19_o add_v nature_n p._n 682._o l._n 17._o r._n shine_v l._n 30._o r._n they_o p._n 688._o l._n 5._o r._n obadiah_n p._n 690._o l._n 53._o r._n ancient_a p._n 690._o l._n 53._o deal_n we_o be_v the_o content_n serm._n i._n john_n 17.1_o these_o word_n speak_v jesus_n and_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n and_o say_v father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v glorify_v thy_o son_n that_o thy_o son_n also_o may_v glorify_v thou_o the_o necessity_n of_o add_v prayer_n to_o preach_v for_o its_o good_a effect_n show_v also_o what_o kind_n of_o cause_n the_o word_n be_v of_o conversion_n and_o what_o be_v the_o requisite_n of_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a prayer_n serm._n ii_o the_o transcendent_a excellency_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n prayer_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o nature_n thereof_o as_o be_v mediatory_a his_o person_n and_o relation_n etc._n etc._n hold_v forth_o as_o a_o ground_n of_o unspeakable_a comfort_n to_o believer_n serm._n iii_o show_n how_o prevalent_a the_o prayer_n be_v that_o be_v pour_v out_o to_o god_n as_o a_o father_n and_o what_o disposition_n and_o frame_n of_o heart_n this_o compellation_n father_n may_v breed_v in_o every_o one_o that_o do_v fervent_o pray_v to_o god_n serm._n iu._n of_o god_n appoint_v a_o hour_n a_o set_a time_n for_o the_o dispense_n his_o mercy_n and_o judgement_n in_o reference_n to_o particular_a person_n and_o his_o church_n and_o church_n enemy_n serm._n v._n of_o the_o nature_n and_o manifestation_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o christ_n pray_v for_o and_o be_v invest_v with_o and_o how_o comfortable_a it_o be_v to_o all_o his_o member_n serm._n vi_o of_o heavenly-mindedness_a show_v that_o we_o shall_v seek_v both_o earthly_a and_o heavenly_a blessing_n chief_o for_o this_o end_n viz._n that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v serm._n vii_o john_n 17.2_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o as_o many_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o the_o text_n vindicate_v from_o arian_n ubiquitarian_n and_o papist_n and_o the_o power_n and_o dominion_n of_o christ_n observe_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o terror_n of_o his_o enemy_n serm._n viii_o the_o effect_n and_o appearance_n of_o the_o kingly_a power_n and_o dominion_n of_o christ_n serm._n ix_o christ_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o head_n apply_v to_o the_o terror_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o member_n serm._n x._o of_o predestination_n or_o god_n give_v some_o of_o mankind_n to_o christ_n not_o all_o for_o he_o to_o redeem_v and_o what_o unspeakable_a ground_n of_o comfort_n to_o god_n people_n flow_v from_o thence_o serm._n xi_o treat_v of_o eternal_a life_n in_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o it_o serm._n xii_o a_o consideration_n of_o eternal_a life_n compare_v with_o this_o present_a life_n and_o with_o its_o contrary_a viz._n eternal_a death_n serm._n xiii_o weighty_a consideration_n upon_o eternity_n serm._n fourteen_o john_n 17.3_o and_o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o ●ly_o true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v the_o necessity_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n and_o arraignment_n of_o ignorance_n serm._n xv._n more_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o ignorance_n serm._n xvi_o show_n what_o save_v knowledge_n be_v in_o its_o concomitant_n and_o effect_n serm._n xvii_o of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o worship_n of_o the_o one_o true_a god_n and_o the_o contrary_a thereto_o viz._n idolatry_n serm._n xviii_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n jesus_n as_o well_o as_o of_o god_n the_o father_n serm._n xix_o john_n 17.4_o i_o have_v glorify_v thou_o on_o the_o earth_n i_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o do_v show_v how_o a_o godly_a life_n though_o it_o merit_v no_o good_a be_v a_o ground_n of_o comfort_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n serm._n xx._n show_n who_o they_o be_v that_o can_v at_o the_o close_a of_o their_o day_n take_v comfort_n in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n god_n give_v they_o to_o do_v as_o also_o what_o thing_n if_o not_o avoid_v will_v much_o diminish_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o godly_a one_o at_o that_o day_n serm._n xxi_o of_o god_n be_v glorify_v by_o man_n salvation_n christ_n chief_a end_n in_o what_o he_o do_v for_o man_n be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o bespeak_v both_o our_o imitation_n and_o unspeakable_a consolation_n serm._n xxii_o of_o christ_n finish_v the_o work_n he_o undertake_v with_o the_o end_n and_o property_n of_o it_o and_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o i●_n to_o believer_n serm._n xxiii_o john_n 17.5_o and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v of_o a_o holy_a work_a life_n the_o excellency_n equity_n and_o necessity_n thereof_o in_o order_n to_o glory_n serm._n xxiv_o of_o vain_a tautology_n in_o prayer_n and_o what_o repetition_n in_o prayer_n be_v such_o and_o what_o not_o show_v also_o what_o thing_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o a_o good_a prayer_n serm._n xxv_o of_o the_o promise_n and_o of_o prayer_n serm._n xxvi_o of_o heavenly_a glory_n as_o oppose_v to_o earthly_a and_o how_o the_o hope_n thereof_o earnest_o seek_v and_o pray_v for_o will_v comfort_v a_o man_n against_o the_o fear_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o trial_n and_o affliction_n serm._n xxvii_o the_o eternal_a deity_n of_o christ_n prove_v and_o whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v any_o so_o vile_a as_o to_o deny_v it_o show_v also_o what_o sin_n do_v much_o provoke_v god_n to_o give_v man_n up_o to_o such_o blasphemy_n serm._n xxviii_o prove_v that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o from_o eternity_n but_o have_v its_o beginning_n in_o time_n and_o reduce_v that_o consideration_n into_o practice_n serm._n xxix_o john_n 17.6_o i_o have_v manifest_v thy_o name_n unto_o the_o man_n which_o then_o give_v i_o out_o of_o the_o world_n thou_o they_o be_v and_o thou_o give_v they_o i_o and_o they_o have_v keep_v thy_o word_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n its_o excellency_n and_o rarity_n show_v that_o god_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o know_v only_o by_o the_o godly_a and_o wherein_o their_o knowledge_n of_o god_n differ_v from_o the_o knowledge_n that_o other_o have_v of_o he_o serm._n xxx_o the_o great_a end_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n in_o their_o preach_a and_o hear_v serm._n xxxi_o that_o god_n people_n be_v not_o of_o though_o in_o this_o world_n wherein_o be_v also_o show_v the_o vast_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n serm._n xxxii_o of_o the_o peculiar_a propriety_n god_n people_n have_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o they_o serm._n xxxiii_o the_o true_o godly_a man_n only_o be_v obedient_a to_o god_n word_n or_o the_o great_a character_n of_o a_o christian_n serm._n xxxiv_o john_n 17.7_o now_o they_o have_v know_v that_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v of_o thou_o of_o growth_n in_o grace_n the_o duty_n necessity_n and_o glory_n of_o it_o serm._n xxxv_o of_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n with_o the_o ingredient_n or_o concomitant_a act_n of_o it_o serm._n xxxvi_o john_n 17.8_o for_o i_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o the_o word_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o and_o they_o have_v receive_v they_o and_o have_v know_v sure_o that_o i_o come_v out_o from_o thou_o and_o they_o have_v believe_v that_o thou_o do_v send_v i_o of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n show_v that_o that_o only_o be_v true_o obedience_n and_o the_o property_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n serm._n xxxvii_o show_n that_o god_n people_n be_v ready_a and_o willing_a in_o obedience_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v so_o tend_v to_o rouse_v man_n up_o from_o dulness_n and_o formality_n in_o god_n service_n serm._n xxxviii_o of_o the_o excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n as_o a_o mediator_n that_o it_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o well_o as_o obedience_n to_o
a_o command_n yet_o withal_o show_v the_o difficulty_n of_o it_o and_o whence_o it_o do_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n sensible_a of_o their_o sin_n be_v so_o hardly_o bring_v to_o believe_v as_o also_o why_o ungodly_a man_n think_v it_o so_o easy_a a_o thing_n serm._n thirty-nine_o further_a show_v how_o acceptable_a it_o be_v to_o god_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o set_v forth_o the_o dangerous_a nature_n of_o trust_v in_o our_o own_o righteousness_n serm._n xl._o further_a set_v forth_o the_o excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o press_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o of_o our_o be_v affect_v with_o it_o and_o invite_v the_o great_a sinner_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o for_o salvation_n serm._n xli_o john_n 17.9_o i_o pray_v for_o they_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o for_o they_o be_v thou_o of_o pray_v both_o for_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a with_o the_o reason_n and_o motive_n thereof_o serm._n xlii_o the_o excellency_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n mediatory_a prayer_n set_v forth_o in_o many_o aggravation_n of_o it_o for_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a serm._n xliii_o of_o the_o extent_n of_o christ_n mediatory_a prayer_n and_o of_o his_o death_n that_o he_o pray_v and_o die_v not_o for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o mankind_n but_o only_o for_o the_o elect_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n expression_n of_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v indefinite_o and_o not_o universal_o serm._n xliv_o reason_n why_o the_o scripture_n speak_v thus_o universal_o about_o christ_n death_n when_o yet_o but_o some_o be_v intend_v also_o what_o benefit_n reprobate_n have_v by_o christ_n with_o some_o argument_n further_o prove_v the_o point_n of_o christ_n die_a not_o for_o every_o man_n but_o some_o serm._n xlv_o the_o application_n of_o the_o former_a subject_n set_v forth_o the_o necessity_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n as_o to_o the_o intere_v we_o in_o christ_n the_o freeness_n of_o god_n love_n the_o qualification_n of_o those_o to_o who_o christ_n death_n be_v make_v advantageous_a and_o also_o their_o privilege_n above_o all_o other_o serm._n xlvi_o of_o freegrace_n opposite_a to_o arminianism_n tend_v to_o raise_v the_o heart_n of_o those_o that_o be_v godly_a to_o joy_n and_o thankfulness_n serm._n xlvii_o of_o god_n propriety_n in_o his_o people_n as_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o the_o good_a that_o accrueth_n to_o they_o serm._n xlviii_o john_n 17.10_o and_o all_o mine_n be_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v i_o and_o i_o be_o glorify_v in_o they_o the_o deity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n clear_v and_o defend_v against_o the_o socinian_o serm._n xlix_o of_o man_n glorify_v of_o christ_n and_o how_o many_o way_n that_o be_v do_v serm._n l._n john_n 17.11_o and_o now_o i_o be_o no_o more_o in_o the_o world_n but_o these_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o i_o come_v to_o thou_o holy_a father_n keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n those_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v of_o christ_n tender_a care_n of_o all_o his_o people_n in_o the_o great_a of_o their_o care_n and_o affliction_n serm._n li._n of_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o god_n people_n be_v in_o the_o world_n chief_o from_o its_o tempt_a and_o seduce_v to_o sin_n serm._n lii_o of_o the_o danger_n god_n people_n be_v in_o in_o the_o world_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o hate_v and_o oppose_v of_o they_o with_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n make_v the_o world_n such_o a_o disquiet_v place_n such_o a_o valley_n of_o tear_n unto_o his_o own_o people_n serm._n liii_o the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n improve_v for_o the_o joy_n of_o all_o believer_n serm._n liv._o that_o all_o civil_a governor_n as_o well_o as_o ecclesiastical_a from_o the_o mean_a master_n of_o a_o family_n to_o the_o great_a monarch_n have_v from_o christ_n a_o spiritual_a charge_n of_o those_o that_o be_v under_o they_o and_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o endeavour_v the_o good_a of_o their_o soul_n serm._n lv._o the_o great_a lord-keeper_n of_o israel_n from_o inevitable_a ruin_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n extol_v serm._n lvi_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v put_v into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n unless_o by_o god_n power_n we_o be_v keep_v therein_o how_o far_o man_n may_v acknowledge_v god_n help_n and_o yet_o with_o the_o pelagian_n arminian_n and_o papist_n not_o give_v he_o his_o due_a glory_n and_o also_o show_v how_o many_o way_n the_o power_n of_o god_n keep_v his_o people_n serm._n lvii_o reason_n prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o god_n preserve_v his_o child_n in_o grace_n that_o god_n keep_v they_o by_o faith_n also_o why_o and_o how_o faith_n keep_v they_o rather_o than_o other_o grace_n serm._n lviii_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o be_v keep_v sound_a in_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o damnableness_n of_o error_n demonstrate_v serm._n lix_n that_o it_o be_v a_o special_a mercy_n for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o agree_v in_o one_o wherein_o their_o unity_n shall_v be_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v among_o they_o serm._n lx._n the_o great_a pattern_n of_o unity_n the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o unity_n that_o be_v between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n against_o the_o socinian_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n shall_v endeavour_v after_o a_o perfect_a unity_n even_o to_o be_v one_o as_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v also_o some_o rule_n guide_v thereunto_o serm._n lxi_o john_n 17.12_o while_o i_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o world_n i_o keep_v they_o in_o thy_o name_n those_o that_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v keep_v and_o none_o of_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v the_o great_a change_n that_o even_o a_o godly_a man_n be_v subject_a unto_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o have_v and_o lose_v those_o sensible_a support_n both_o outward_a and_o inward_a which_o god_n at_o sometime_o vouchsafe_v to_o they_o also_o what_o those_o sensible_a enjoyment_n be_v and_o why_o god_n do_v so_o change_v the_o condition_n of_o his_o people_n serm._n lxii_o show_n how_o prone_a man_n be_v for_o to_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n and_o wherein_o it_o appear_v serm._n lxiii_o of_o the_o saint_n lord-keeper_n show_v how_o safe_a the_o godly_a be_v keep_v to_o salvation_n by_o christ_n as_o a_o trust_v commit_v to_o he_o serm._n lxiv_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n keep_v those_o that_o be_v he_o of_o a_o four_o fold_v principle_n that_o be_v operative_a to_o the_o preservation_n of_o believer_n and_o of_o the_o excellent_a effect_n of_o the_o lively_a meditation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o be_v keep_v by_o christ_n to_o salvation_n serm._n lxv_o of_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o question_v state_v serm._n lxvi_o of_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n serm._n lxvii_o argument_n prove_v that_o every_o one_o that_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v preserve_v to_o eternal_a life_n serm._n lxviii_o of_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n show_v that_o some_o person_n be_v wilful_o set_v for_o to_o damn_v themselves_o though_o they_o have_v never_o so_o many_o excellent_a remedy_n and_o mean_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o move_v they_o thereunto_o and_o character_n of_o such_o person_n serm._n lxix_o of_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n show_v more_o cause_n and_o symptom_n of_o such_o wretched_a person_n that_o be_v desperate_o bend_v to_o damn_v themselves_o serm._n lxx_o of_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n show_v from_o the_o example_n of_o judas_n that_o man_n may_v be_v eminent_a for_o a_o while_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o afterward_o prove_v desperate_a apostate_n serm._n lxxi_o of_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n serm._n lxxii_o of_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n serm._n lxxiii_o the_o great_a stumbling-block_n of_o religion_n remove_v serm._n lxxiv_o of_o the_o scripture_n serm._n lxxv_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture-prophesy_n and_o against_o judicial_a astrology_n and_o witchcraft_n show_v the_o vanity_n and_o wickedness_n thereof_o and_o of_o seek_v to_o they_o serm._n lxxvi_o john_n 17.13_o and_o now_o i_o come_v to_o thou_o and_o these_o thing_n i_o speak_v in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v have_v my_o joy_n fulfil_v in_o themselves_o the_o joy_n of_o saint_n handle_v both_o as_o a_o duty_n and_o privilege_n as_o be_v one_o great_a end_n of_o christ_n prayer_n command_n promise_n and_o ministry_n serm._n lxxvii_o of_o joy_n and_o comfort_n show_v how_o many_o way_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v it_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n serm._n lxxviii_o the_o several_a
sort_n of_o joy_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n show_v also_o how_o far_o it_o transcend_v and_o differ_v from_o worldly_a joy_n serm._n lxxix_o the_o excellent_a effect_n of_o christian_a joy_n serm._n lxxx_o john_n 17.14_o i_o have_v give_v they_o thy_o word_n and_o the_o world_n have_v hate_v they_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o receive_v do_v enrage_v the_o wicked_a world_n and_o reason_n thereof_o serm._n lxxxi_o of_o suffer_v for_o christ_n cause_n and_o how_o it_o engage_v god_n for_o to_o take_v care_n of_o such_o as_o so_o suffer_v also_o the_o duty_n of_o minister_n about_o preach_v god_n truth_n serm._n lxxxii_o of_o wicked_a man_n hate_v the_o godly_a the_o cause_n effect_n and_o property_n of_o it_o serm._n lxxxiii_o the_o application_n of_o the_o forego_n observation_n both_o to_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a tend_v to_o encourage_v and_o rejoice_v the_o one_o under_o all_o their_o suffering_n and_o deter_v and_o reclaim_v the_o other_o from_o all_o opposition_n serm._n lxxxiv_o of_o conformity_n to_o christ_n in_o not_o be_v of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o his_o suffering_n serm._n lxxxv_o john_n 17.15_o i_o pray_v not_o that_o thou_o shall_v take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o thou_o shall_v keep_v they_o from_o the_o evil_n show_v why_o god_n continue_v his_o child_n in_o this_o world_n of_o sin_n and_o sorrow_n and_o do_v not_o take_v they_o immediate_o to_o heaven_n and_o also_o how_o far_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o pray_v for_o or_o desire_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o this_o world_n serm._n lxxxvi_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mercy_n to_o be_v keep_v from_o sin_n and_o all_o evil_n in_o our_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n than_o from_o the_o affliction_n themselves_o serm._n lxxxvii_o that_o god_n have_v determine_v a_o precise_a time_n to_o every_o particular_a man_n in_o the_o world_n how_o long_o he_o shall_v live_v serm._n lxxxviii_o john_n 17.16_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n even_o as_o i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o world_n the_o heavenly_a man_n much_o improve_v by_o much_o consider_v that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n serm._n lxxxix_o john_n 17.17_o sanctify_v they_o through_o thy_o truth_n thy_o word_n be_v truth_n of_o growth_n in_o grace_n show_v that_o and_o how_o many_o way_n a_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v sanctify_v serm._n xc_o the_o contrary_n of_o growth_n in_o grace_n a_o comfortable_a advertisement_n to_o such_o as_o mourn_v under_o their_o sense_n of_o not_o grow_v with_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o grow_v in_o grace_n serm._n xci_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o sanctification_n and_o in_o particular_a of_o god_n as_o the_o instrumental_a cause_n serm._n xcii_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n serm._n xciii_o the_o transcendent_a property_n of_o the_o scripture_n serm._n xciv_o john_n 17.18_o as_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o into_o the_o world_n even_o so_o have_v i_o send_v they_o into_o the_o world_n how_o requisite_a a_o sound_a mind_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v to_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o christ_n peculiar_a love_n to_o and_o care_n of_o such_o serm._n xcv_o of_o christ_n mission_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n serm._n xcvi_o of_o the_o public_a office_n of_o the_o ministry_n some_o distinction_n concern_v it_o and_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o lawful_a call_v thereunto_o also_o show_v wherein_o private_a christian_n shall_v exercise_v their_o gift_n both_o ordinary_o and_o in_o extraordinary_a case_n serm._n xcvii_o that_o the_o scripture_n appoint_v a_o distinct_a office_n of_o the_o ministry_n show_n wherein_o the_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n consist_v and_o that_o none_o may_v enter_v into_o that_o office_n without_o a_o authoritative_a mission_n also_o what_o the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v be_v and_o whether_o reading_n be_v preach_v serm._n xcviii_o john_n 17.19_o and_o for_o their_o sake_n i_o sanctify_v myself_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n sanctify_a himself_n to_o be_v a_o mediator_n show_v what_o be_v imply_v in_o it_o how_o pure_a willing_a and_o fit_a he_o be_v for_o that_o great_a undertake_n serm._n xcix_o show_v further_o what_o be_v imply_v in_o that_o phrase_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o sanctify_v myself_o handle_v chief_o the_o priestly_a office_n of_o christ_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o socinian_o and_o for_o the_o comfort_n and_o direction_n of_o penitent_a sinner_n serm._n c._n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o priest_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n the_o property_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n the_o way_n how_o man_n come_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o its_o efficacy_n as_o to_o sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o justification_n serm._n ci._n of_o sanctification_n as_o the_o effect_n of_o christ_n death_n show_v that_o no_o man_n true_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n that_o do_v not_o also_o for_o sanctification_n serm._n cii_o john_n 17.20_o neither_o pray_v i_o for_o these_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o through_o their_o word_n show_n why_o christ_n who_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n yet_o put_v up_o prayer_n what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o his_o prayer_n and_o we_o and_o the_o great_a advantage_n believer_n have_v by_o christ_n pray_v for_o they_o serm._n ciii_o in_o what_o respect_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n mediation_n extend_v to_o all_o believer_n alike_o and_o in_o what_o not_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o weak_a christian_n and_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v most_o contemptible_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n serm._n civ_o that_o in_o some_o particular_n the_o poor_a weak_a christian_n have_v more_o respect_n from_o christ_n then_o the_o strong_a one_o serm._n cv_o of_o christ_n love_n and_o care_n of_o every_o one_o of_o he_o before_o they_o have_v a_o be_v serm._n cvi_o of_o both_o the_o move_a cause_n and_o effect_n of_o election_n and_o of_o christ_n prayer_n and_o death_n against_o arminian_n and_o other_o serm._n cvii_o of_o faith_n the_o several_a kind_n of_o it_o and_o especial_o of_o justify_v faith_n its_o object_n and_o seat_n etc._n etc._n serm._n cviii_o of_o justify_v faith_n show_v what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a thereunto_o and_o how_o or_o in_o what_o method_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n enable_v the_o humble_a soul_n to_o believe_v serm._n cix_o of_o justify_v faith_n serm._n cx_o of_o justify_v faith_n that_o it_o be_v a_o fiducial_a recumbency_n in_o christ_n serm._n cxi_o that_o a_o gospel_n ministry_n be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o what_o end_v serm._n cxii_o john_n 17.21_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n art_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o of_o unity_n among_o god_n people_n the_o nature_n of_o it_o serm._n cxiii_o of_o unity_n among_o christian_n the_o benefit_n and_o necessity_n of_o it_o and_o the_o mischief_n of_o division_n serm._n cxiv_o of_o unity_n among_o the_o godly_a more_o particular_n set_v forth_o the_o excellency_n of_o it_o and_o mischief_n of_o division_n answer_v this_o objection_n viz._n see_v god_n have_v promise_v one_o heart_n and_o way_n and_o christ_n pray_v for_o it_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o breach_n among_o the_o godly_a serm._n cxv_o of_o unity_n among_o believer_n caution_n about_o it_o also_o set_v forth_o some_o good_a unite_n principle_n with_o a_o censure_n of_o some_o bad_a one_o serm._n cxvi_o of_o christian_a unity_n set_v forth_o some_o rule_n for_o unity_n in_o doctrine_n church-order_n and_o affection_n for_o the_o prevent_n of_o error_n schism_n and_o wrath._n serm._n cxvii_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o person_n and_o unity_n of_o essence_n in_o the_o deity_n against_o the_o socinian_o serm._n cxviii_o the_o glorious_a mystery_n of_o the_o saint_n union_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o the_o father_n by_o he_o open_v serm._n cxix_o show_n what_o a_o special_a mean_n unity_n among_o believer_n be_v to_o enlarge_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o unity_n without_o true_a doctrine_n be_v no_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n against_o the_o papist_n serm._n cxx_o a_o consideration_n of_o faith_n in_o its_o general_n nature_n as_o dogmatic_a or_o historical_a carry_v out_o to_o scripture-truths_n because_o of_o divine_a authority_n serm._n cxxi_o of_o dogmatic_a faith_n the_o property_n of_o and_o contrary_n to_o it_o serm._n cxxii_o john_n 17.22_o and_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o of_o the_o glory_n which_o christ_n communicate_v
unto_o all_o his_o disciple_n even_o in_o this_o life_n and_o of_o union_n with_o he_o as_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o serm._n cxxiii_o practical_a conclusion_n from_o the_o forego_n doctrine_n serm._n cxxiv_o that_o jesus_n christ_n though_o god_n coequal_a with_o the_o father_n have_v many_o thing_n give_v he_o by_o the_o father_n and_o how_o that_o can_v be_v serm._n cxxv_o unity_n among_o christian_n be_v part_n of_o that_o glory_n christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o they_o serm._n cxxvi_o john_n 17.23_o i_o in_o they_o and_o thou_o in_o i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o and_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o of_o union_n with_o christ_n show_v how_o or_o in_o what_o respect_n christ_n be_v in_o every_o believer_n and_o how_o he_o be_v not_o serm._n cxxvii_o show_v something_o of_o the_o nature_n manner_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o believer_n serm._n cxxviii_o of_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n of_o both_o their_o be_v in_o believer_n and_o how_o that_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o they_o not_o quite_o free_v from_o sin_n and_o sorrow_n serm._n cxxix_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o believer_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o nature_n of_o it_o and_o what_o make_v to_o the_o perfect_a consummation_n of_o it_o serm._n cxxx_o show_v that_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o believe_v against_o the_o popish_a implicit_a faith_n and_o what_o knowledge_n the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n be_v serm._n cxxxi_o of_o the_o unspeakable_a love_n of_o god_n to_o believer_n show_v wherein_o god_n love_v to_o christ_n and_o believer_n be_v alike_o and_o wherein_o it_o differ_v serm._n cxxxii_o show_v of_o what_o high_a concernment_n it_o be_v to_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n to_o know_v how_o great_o believer_n who_o they_o hate_v and_o persecute_v be_v belove_v of_o god_n serm._n cxxxiii_o john_n 17.24_o father_n i_o will_v that_o they_o also_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v behold_v my_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o for_o thou_o love_v i_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o connection_n between_o grace_n and_o glory_n and_o that_o glory_n even_o to_o the_o most_o godly_a be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n serm._n cxxxiv_o of_o immediate_a enjoyment_n of_o and_o communion_n with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n as_o the_o compliment_n of_o man_n happiness_n serm._n cxxxv_o of_o a_o humble_a christian_n improve_n in_o his_o prayer_n the_o sweet_a apellation_n of_o father_n serm._n cxxxvi_o of_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n show_v what_o it_o be_v to_o behold_v christ_n glory_n in_o heaven_n serm._n cxxxvii_o how_o christ_n as_o mediator_n have_v his_o glory_n give_v he_o although_o as_o god_n he_o can_v not_o proper_o have_v it_o give_v he_o except_o by_o way_n of_o manifestation_n against_o the_o socinian_o serm._n cxxxviii_o of_o god_n love_n to_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o in_o he_o to_o all_o believer_n from_o all_o eternity_n serm._n cxxxix_o john_n 17.25_o o_o righteous_a father_n the_o world_n have_v not_o know_v thou_o but_o i_o have_v know_v thou_o and_o these_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n as_o judge_n in_o his_o administration_n to_o devil_n and_o wicked_a man_n and_o as_o a_o father_n unto_o his_o own_o people_n serm._n cxl_o that_o every_o unregenerate_a man_n whether_o in_o or_o out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v destitute_a of_o the_o true_a save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n serm._n cxli_o christ_n be_v the_o great_a teacher_n of_o his_o church_n serm._n cxlii_o set_v forth_o the_o singular_a christian_a cleave_v to_o god_n though_o the_o multitude_n go_v another_o way_n and_o how_o his_o godliness_n in_o that_o case_n endear_v he_o to_o god_n serm._n cxliii_o john_n 17.26_o and_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o they_o thy_o name_n and_o will_v declare_v it_o that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o may_v be_v in_o they_o and_o i_o in_o they_o of_o christ_n teach_v believer_n show_v what_o great_a need_n the_o most_o illuminate_v christian_n have_v still_o to_o be_v teach_v serm._n cxliv_o of_o the_o powerful_a sense_n and_o feel_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n how_o it_o be_v attain_v and_o what_o a_o great_a advantage_n it_o be_v to_o he_o that_o have_v it_o both_o in_o reference_n to_o duty_n and_o comfort_n serm._n cxlv_o direction_n how_v to_o obtain_v and_o always_o to_o preserve_v the_o knowledge_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n in_o our_o heart_n if_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o content_n of_o this_o book_n appear_v incongruous_a either_o to_o the_o author_n or_o his_o work_n let_v it_o be_v hereby_o know_v that_o not_o the_o author_n but_o a_o friend_n of_o his_o gather_v they_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v t._n u._n cxlvi_o sermon_n upon_o the_o whole_a seventeen_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o st_n john_n sermon_n i._o the_o necessity_n of_o add_v prayer_n to_o preach_v for_o its_o good_a effect_n show_v also_o what_o kind_n of_o cause_n the_o word_n be_v of_o conversion_n and_o what_o be_v the_o requisite_n of_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a prayer_n john_n 17.1_o these_o word_n speak_v jesus_n and_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n and_o say_v etc._n etc._n my_o purpose_n be_v god_n assist_v to_o go_v through_o this_o chapter_n be_v the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n immediate_o before_o his_o passion_n if_o the_o word_n of_o a_o die_a man_n be_v much_o to_o be_v regard_v how_o much_o more_o of_o a_o die_a christ_n and_o word_n put_v up_o in_o a_o prayer_n way_n which_o come_v from_o the_o most_o serious_a and_o heavenly_a affection_n within_o christ_n love_n be_v sincere_a and_o natural_a now_o as_o in_o natural_a motion_n the_o near_o the_o body_n come_v to_o the_o centre_n the_o swift_a the_o motion_n be_v thus_o christ_n love_n though_o great_a always_o yet_o the_o expression_n of_o it_o be_v overflow_a most_o at_o last_o his_o best_a wine_n be_v at_o last_o and_o certain_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o prefer_v scripture_n before_o scripture_n we_o may_v say_v though_o all_o be_v gold_n yet_o this_o be_v a_o pearl_n in_o the_o gold_n though_o all_o be_v like_o the_o heaven_n yet_o this_o be_v like_o the_o sun_n and_o star_n oh_o that_o both_o my_o heart_n and_o your_o heart_n be_v purify_v with_o a_o coal_n of_o fire_n from_o the_o altar_n for_o this_o subject_a not_o only_o part_n but_o great_a grace_n be_v require_v both_o to_o preach_v and_o hear_v this_o subject_a but_o let_v we_o enter_v into_o this_o land_n of_o canaan_n the_o apostle_n john_n of_o all_o the_o evangelist_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o eagle_n because_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o high_a and_o most_o sublime_a matter_n for_o as_o it_o be_v common_o receive_v he_o outlive_v all_o the_o other_o apostle_n there_o be_v damnable_a heretic_n rise_v up_o that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n at_o the_o church_n entreaty_n therefore_o he_o write_v this_o book_n main_o assert_v christ_n godhead_n and_o handle_v those_o thing_n especial_o which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v leave_v out_o especial_o insist_v upon_o those_o excellent_a discourse_n and_o dialogue_n christ_n have_v with_o the_o pharisee_n as_o also_o those_o divine_a instruction_n and_o consolation_n he_o give_v his_o disciple_n at_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o of_o which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n record_v nothing_o at_o all_o now_o when_o our_o saviour_n have_v be_v large_a in_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v they_o he_o bend_v himself_o to_o earnest_a prayer_n for_o they_o that_o what_o he_o have_v say_v may_v take_v place_n in_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o in_o the_o chapter_n you_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o 1._o the_o introduction_n to_o the_o matter_n and_o 2._o the_o matter_n itself_o the_o matter_n be_v christ_n earnest_a prayer_n and_o that_o for_o a_o threefold_a object_n 1._o himself_o 2._o his_o apostle_n 3._o all_o other_o who_o in_o time_n shall_v believe_v in_o he_o for_o the_o introduction_n there_o we_o have_v 1._o the_o order_n of_o christ_n prayer_n and_o 2._o the_o description_n of_o his_o gesture_n the_o order_n be_v these_o word_n speak_v jesus_n that_o be_v after_o christ_n have_v finish_v those_o admirable_a and_o comfortable_a instruction_n than_o he_o betake_v himself_o to_o prayer_n from_o whence_o observe_v effect_n that_o to_o all_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n prayer_n be_v necessary_a for_o their_o good_a effect_n christ_n himself_o do_v not_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o plant_v but_o he_o pray_v there_o may_v be_v a_o water_v from_o above_o thus_o all_o minister_n and_o all_o hearer_n be_v to_o take_v christ_n way_n even_o as_o at_o other_o time_n we_o read_v that_o christ_n spend_v the_o day_n in_o preach_v and_o the_o night_n in_o pray_v for_o
strength_n shall_v fail_v they_o lest_o one_o time_n or_o other_o they_o shall_v yield_v to_o sin_n and_o be_v overwhelm_v now_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o these_o fear_v christ_n have_v pray_v for_o thou_o as_o well_o as_o for_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v insomuch_o that_o we_o may_v say_v christ_n prayer_n for_o believer_n be_v all_o their_o hope_n and_o foundation_n in_o some_o sad_a exigence_n how_o careful_a be_v we_o to_o have_v the_o prayer_n of_o all_o god_n people_n to_o be_v remember_v in_o such_o and_o such_o a_o congregation_n but_o if_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v pray_v for_o a_o man_n it_o will_v not_o amount_v to_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n prayer_n therefore_o let_v the_o godly_a comfort_n one_o another_o with_o these_o thing_n last_o he_o have_v pray_v for_o their_o glorification_n thus_o he_o pray_v glorification_n that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o he_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o that_o they_o be_v where_o he_o be_v viz._n that_o they_o may_v enjoy_v that_o glory_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o they_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v the_o resurrection_n job_n 11.25_o because_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o such_o at_o the_o last_o day_n the_o body_n though_o dead_a and_o consume_v to_o ash_n shall_v not_o always_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n neither_o shall_v the_o soul_n have_v such_o rag_n and_o deformity_n upon_o it_o continual_o but_o shall_v be_v clothe_v with_o glorious_a robe_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o chief_a and_o main_a matter_n of_o christ_n prayer_n not_o so_o much_o earthly_a and_o temporal_a thing_n as_o heavenly_a for_o although_o christ_n do_v comfort_v his_o disciple_n even_o in_o earthly_a strait_n mat._n 6.25_o that_o they_o have_v a_o father_n in_o heaven_n and_o if_o he_o do_v provide_v for_o all_o the_o creature_n in_o the_o world_n they_o may_v much_o rather_o be_v persuade_v of_o his_o care_n to_o they_o and_o paul_n argue_v rom._n 8._o he_o give_v his_o only_a son_n for_o they_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o give_v all_o thing_n else_o yet_o the_o great_a thing_n that_o christ_n before_o his_o suffering_n think_v fit_a to_o commend_v unto_o god_n be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a benefit_n and_o that_o be_v the_o first_o consideration_n the_o matter_n of_o christ_n prayer_n mediation_n second_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o prayer_n it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o mediation_n it_o be_v a_o mediatory_a prayer_n and_o so_o differ_v from_o all_o the_o prayer_n of_o other_o man_n as_o they_o be_v bare_a mere_a man_n so_o their_o prayer_n be_v bare_a mere_a prayer_n there_o be_v no_o merit_n no_o mediation_n in_o thou_o but_o christ_n prayer_n be_v of_o a_o far_o more_o transcendent_a nature_n even_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n come_v far_o short_a of_o christ_n their_o blood_n be_v not_o expiatory_a it_o be_v not_o by_o way_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n whereas_o christ_n be_v thus_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o prayer_n and_o prayer_n god_n may_v regard_v one_o man_n prayer_n more_o then_o another_o it_o may_v be_v more_o effectual_a as_o in_o that_o supposition_n though_o daniel_n and_o job_n stand_v and_o pray_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v hear_v job_n you_o know_v be_v command_v to_o pray_v for_o his_o friend_n and_o his_o prayer_n be_v accept_v of_o more_o than_o they_o and_o daniel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o man_n great_o belove_v because_o his_o prayer_n be_v so_o ready_o hear_v likewise_o the_o prayer_n of_o many_o or_o a_o church_n be_v more_o prevalent_a than_o the_o prayer_n of_o one_o single_a person_n so_o a_o prayer_n from_o one_o in_o office_n as_o a_o minister_n be_v more_o than_o of_o one_o in_o a_o private_a condition_n but_o yet_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n do_v far_o surmount_v all_o so_o then_o in_o christ_n prayer_n we_o be_v especial_o to_o look_v to_o the_o mediatory_a power_n to_o the_o impetratory_n efficacy_n of_o it_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a supplication_n as_o we_o be_v but_o a_o powerful_a obtain_n of_o what_o be_v desire_v his_o prayer_n can_v be_v no_o more_o refuse_v than_o his_o blood_n they_o both_o be_v in_o the_o same_o nature_n they_o go_v along_o under_o the_o same_o respect_n his_o blood_n may_v as_o well_o be_v without_o advantage_n as_o his_o prayer_n the_o high-priest_n prayer_n for_o the_o people_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n for_o the_o people_n than_o their_o own_o prayer_n i_o tell_v thou_o all_o thy_o own_o prayer_n be_v not_o of_o that_o consequence_n to_o thou_o as_o christ_n prayer_n be_v all_o mediatory_a and_o impetratory_a efficacy_n be_v from_o that_o pray_v three_o consider_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n who_o do_v pray_v for_o believer_n and_o thereby_o come_v a_o infinite_a efficacy_n and_o worth_a to_o it_o christ_n who_o pray_v for_o we_o be_v god_n and_o man_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n there_o come_v a_o infinite_a worth_n upon_o his_o prayer_n his_o prayer_n be_v like_o himself_o and_o from_o this_o account_n it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v meritorious_a with_o god_n that_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o grant_v he_o his_o request_n his_o supplication_n be_v put_v up_o in_o his_o own_o name_n he_o need_v no_o mediator_n there_o be_v none_o to_o make_v way_n for_o his_o acceptance_n with_o god_n so_o that_o this_o meditation_n afford_v unspeakable_a consolation_n though_o all_o thy_o prayer_n and_o duty_n be_v nothing_o worth_a yet_o christ_n be_v of_o infinite_a value_n the_o dignity_n and_o merit_n whereby_o any_o good_a come_v to_o we_o be_v not_o for_o our_o prayer_n but_o for_o christ_n certain_o the_o people_n of_o god_n do_v not_o live_v so_o cheerful_o upon_o this_o consideration_n as_o they_o ought_v they_o be_v careful_a to_o pour_v out_o their_o own_o prayer_n but_o not_o by_o faith_n to_o rest_v on_o christ_n what_o need_v thou_o fear_v who_o can_v bring_v prayer_n of_o infinite_a merit_n the_o lord_n christ_n have_v pray_v that_o i_o may_v have_v this_o mercy_n he_o have_v pray_v that_o this_o grace_n shall_v be_v vouchsafe_v unto_o i_o what_o fault_n can_v be_v find_v with_o christ_n what_o blame_n or_o imperfection_n be_v to_o be_v see_v or_o find_v in_o he_o how_o can_v christ_n be_v deny_v in_o justice_n it_o be_v his_o right_n to_o have_v his_o request_n answer_v father_n four_o consider_v the_o respect_n and_o relation_n christ_n stand_v in_o towards_o god_n the_o father_n and_o then_o you_o will_v still_o say_v his_o prayer_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n to_o 〈◊〉_d now_o his_o relation_n be_v the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n and_o dear_o belove_v by_o he_o this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well-pleased_n mat._n 3.17_o so_o that_o his_o prayer_n be_v hear_v unquestionable_o upon_o a_o twofold_a ground_n the_o one_o of_o justice_n because_o infinite_a in_o worth_n the_o other_o of_o love_n because_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n this_o heb._n 5.7_o he_o be_v say_v while_o he_o pray_v to_o be_v hear_v in_o what_o he_o fear_v and_o joh._n 11.12_o christ_n thank_v the_o father_n that_o he_o hear_v he_o always_o and_o often_o do_v he_o profess_v that_o the_o father_n love_v he_o the_o son_n and_o that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v one_o this_o also_o be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o meditate_v upon_o thou_o have_v the_o prayer_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n who_o the_o father_n hear_v always_o and_o to_o who_o he_o deny_v nothing_o if_o we_o be_v able_a to_o say_v lord_n this_o be_v not_o my_o prayer_n only_o this_o be_v not_o my_o desire_n only_o but_o it_o be_v the_o request_n of_o christ_n so_o belove_v of_o thou_o than_o thou_o may_v just_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v accept_v of_o o_o lord_n though_o i_o have_v no_o loveliness_n no_o comeliness_n yet_o christ_n have_v some_o have_v doubt_v whether_o christ_n be_v hear_v in_o every_o thing_n he_o pray_v for_o no._n and_o they_o instance_n in_o his_o prayer_n that_o the_o cup_n may_v pass_v from_o he_o but_o that_o be_v only_o conditional_a if_o it_o be_v thy_o will_n and_o therefore_o he_o add_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thou_o be_v do_v that_o which_o he_o absolute_o pray_v for_o be_v god_n support_v and_o preservation_n of_o he_o as_o also_o the_o raise_v he_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n that_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v gteat_fw-la difficulty_n be_v his_o prayer_n luke_n 23.34_o father_n forgive_v they_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v but_o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o this_o we_o need_v not_o doubt_v of_o because_o the_o pharisee_n and_o other_o they_o sin_v against_o their_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n and_o for_o such_o christ_n pray_v not_o but_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v sometime_o apply_v to_o those_o power_n and_o principality_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n 2._o you_o have_v the_o extent_n of_o this_o power_n by_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o object_n over_o all_o flesh_n flesh_n be_v usual_a put_v synechdochical_o for_o man_n to_o denote_v his_o fragility_n and_o meanness_n 3._o there_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o obtain_v this_o power_n it_o be_v give_v he_o before_o we_o gather_v our_o doctrine_n let_v we_o theological_o explicate_v this_o text_n against_o christ_n say_v he_o have_v all_o power_n give_v he_o from_o whence_o three_o corrupt_a opinion_n have_v be_v by_o some_o in_o a_o seem_a way_n establish_v 1._o the_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o arian_n arian_n what_o christ_n have_v say_v they_o be_v give_v he_o therefore_o he_o be_v deus_fw-la constitutus_fw-la deus_fw-la creatus_fw-la deus_fw-la datus_fw-la not_o deus_fw-la natus_fw-la how_o can_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o god_n who_o have_v all_o he_o have_v give_v he_o in_o time_n but_o this_o be_v answer_v first_o if_o christ_n speak_v here_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n then_o though_o not_o as_o god_n yet_o as_o the_o second_o person_n he_o be_v of_o the_o father_n and_o so_o not_o in_o time_n but_o from_o all_o eternity_n have_v with_o his_o person_n all_o those_o divine_a property_n communicate_v unto_o he_o for_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n because_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n but_o second_o if_o the_o text_n speak_v not_o of_o his_o nature_n but_o the_o office_n or_o reward_n rather_o of_o his_o mediatorship_n than_o that_o power_n and_o glory_n which_o be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v give_v he_o may_v well_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o mediatory_a power_n and_o honour_n god_n vouchsafe_v to_o he_o and_o although_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o personal_a union_n all_o honour_n and_o glory_n be_v due_a to_o he_o yet_o god_n have_v so_o order_v it_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o manifestation_n of_o it_o till_o he_o have_v suffer_v and_o run_v through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n therefore_o many_o understand_v this_o power_n here_o say_v to_o be_v give_v christ_n only_o in_o respect_n of_o manifestation_n for_o in_o scripture-language_n haec_fw-la aliquid_fw-la dicitur_fw-la fieri_fw-la quando_fw-la incipit_fw-la patefieri_fw-la as_o god_n say_v this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o act._n 13.33_o upon_o christ_n resurrection_n because_o than_o he_o be_v true_o manifest_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n lutheran_n 2_o another_o party_n rise_v up_o and_o squeeze_v blood_n instead_o of_o milk_n those_o lutheran_n that_o be_v call_v ubiquitarian_n because_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o say_v that_o the_o property_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o humane_a thus_o because_o it_o be_v say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v christ_n therefore_o they_o conclude_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v omnipotent_a omniscient_a omnipresent_v but_o this_o be_v to_o argue_v fallacious_o from_o the_o abstract_n to_o the_o concrete_a for_o suppose_v this_o be_v a_o infinite_a power_n that_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o it_o only_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o concrete_a to_o be_v omnipotent_a not_o to_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o abstract_n christ_n be_v make_v omnipotent_a his_o humane_a nature_n be_v not_o papist_n 3._o some_o papist_n but_o not_o all_o from_o this_o expression_n gather_v that_o the_o right_n of_o all_o temporal_a dominion_n be_v here_o give_v to_o christ_n and_o from_o hence_o will_v gather_v that_o because_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n therefore_o he_o succee_v he_o in_o this_o power_n and_o so_o can_v dispose_v of_o all_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n as_o he_o please_v but_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o papist_n say_v this_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n be_v restrain_v to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n viz._n to_o gather_v and_o preserve_v his_o church_n and_o at_o last_o to_o save_v it_o otherwise_o christ_n will_v not_o have_v say_v to_o the_o man_n who_o desire_v he_o to_o divide_v the_o inheritance_n who_o make_v i_o a_o judge_n luk._n 12.14_o for_o if_o man_n have_v not_o yet_o if_o god_n have_v he_o have_v a_o full_a call_v to_o exercise_v such_o a_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n as_o valentia_n the_o jesuit_n well_o urge_v the_o text_n thus_o vindicate_v let_v we_o observe_v this_o doctrine_n doct._n that_o christ_n have_v power_n over_o all_o man_n there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o great_a so_o powerful_a nor_o no_o company_n of_o man_n nor_o all_o the_o man_n join_v together_o in_o the_o world_n can_v exempt_v themselves_o from_o that_o power_n christ_n have_v over_o they_o we_o have_v one_o or_o two_o parallel_n place_n that_o confirm_v this_o mat._n 28.18_o all_o power_n be_v give_v i_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n there_o the_o subject_n be_v more_o large_a not_o only_o all_o flesh_n but_o all_o spirit_n mat._n 11.27_o all_o thing_n be_v deliver_v unto_o i_o of_o my_o father_n there_o also_o the_o subject_n be_v more_o large_a not_o only_o all_o person_n but_o all_o thing_n as_o heb._n 2._o all_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v subject_n to_o he_o power_n before_o we_o come_v to_o mention_v what_o act_v there_o be_v which_o declare_v this_o power_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v lay_v down_o several_a particular_n to_o clear_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o power_n and_o first_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v power_n over_o all_o man_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v restrict_o or_o exclusive_o universal_a as_o if_o his_o dominion_n be_v only_o over_o man_n no_o you_o hear_v it_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o well_o as_o earth_n yea_o and_o in_o hell_n also_o phil._n 2._o every_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n be_v to_o bow_v to_o he_o the_o devil_n be_v whole_o in_o subjection_n to_o he_o we_o read_v of_o his_o power_n over_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n cast_v they_o out_o against_o their_o will_n from_o the_o possess_v insomuch_o that_o they_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o swine_n without_o his_o permission_n oh_o this_o part_n of_o christ_n power_n that_o he_o have_v conquer_v the_o devil_n have_v they_o all_o in_o subjection_n shall_v be_v no_o mean_a part_n of_o a_o christian_n comfort_n for_o who_o be_v thy_o great_a enemy_n who_o be_v likely_a ●o_o undo_v thou_o not_o man_n but_o devil_n in_o their_o temptation_n how_o great_o be_v the_o godly_a in_o danger_n of_o be_v swallow_v by_o they_o but_o christ_n have_v power_n over_o they_o he_o bid_v they_o go_v our_o leave_n of_o tempt_a and_o they_o dare_v not_o or_o can_v come_v again_o yea_o the_o good_a angel_n those_o thousand_o and_o ten_o thousand_o of_o minister_a spirit_n they_o be_v whole_o at_o his_o beck_n no_o servant_n will_v soon_o stir_v at_o our_o beck_n than_o the_o host_n of_o angel_n will_v at_o his_o word_n therefore_o heb._n 1._o when_o christ_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o angel_n be_v bid_v to_o worship_v he_o so_o then_o here_o be_v a_o glorious_a power_n indeed_o which_o reach_v not_o only_o to_o man_n but_o to_o devil_n to_o angel_n oh_o how_o happy_a be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n who_o have_v this_o christ_n for_o their_o saviour_n that_o be_v clothe_v with_o so_o much_o power_n if_o our_o eye_n be_v open_v with_o the_o prophet_n servant_n we_o shall_v see_v more_o be_v with_o we_o then_o against_o we_o and_o then_o all_o thing_n the_o inanimate_a and_o animate_v creature_n be_v under_o his_o power_n the_o disciple_n wonder_v at_o it_o when_o they_o say_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v this_o who_o the_o wind_n and_o sea_n obey_v mat._n 8.27_o so_o that_o this_o power_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o more_o comprehensive_a than_o this_o text_n express_v for_o christ_n only_o speak_v of_o man_n because_o he_o instance_v in_o that_o part_n of_o power_n whereby_o he_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o such_o be_v only_a man_n second_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o though_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o christ_n spirit_n yet_o the_o administration_n and_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v by_o his_o spirit_n call_v therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n by_o that_o he_o convince_v by_o that_o he_o convert_v by_o that_o he_o comfort_v insomuch_o that_o christ_n tell_v his_o disciple_n it_o be_v expedient_a he_o shall_v bodily_a depart_v from_o they_o but_o he_o will_v send_v the_o comforter_n to_o they_o joh._n 15.26_o so_o that_o not_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v vicarius_fw-la christ_n in_o christ_n stead_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o all_o the_o same_o glorious_a and_o spiritual_a effect_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v sometime_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n sometime_o to_o
christ_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o their_o peculiar_a appropriation_n christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v and_o pray_v for_o as_o the_o author_n of_o all_o that_o grace_n and_o comfort_n we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o 3._o although_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n extend_v to_o the_o body_n and_o external_o of_o man_n man_n yet_o that_o which_o in_o the_o text_n be_v considerable_a be_v that_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n and_o this_o be_v more_o than_o any_o temporal_a power_n can_v do_v he_o bid_v matthew_n the_o publican_n follow_v he_o and_o he_o leave_v all_o to_o follow_v he_o he_o cast_v a_o eye_n upon_o peter_n and_o he_o present_o go_v out_o and_o weep_v bitter_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n this_o power_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o conversant_a it_o be_v by_o this_o their_o mind_n be_v enlighten_v their_o heart_n change_v their_o lust_n subdue_v and_o they_o make_v new_a creature_n which_o make_v he_o say_v he_o be_v the_o life_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o way_n joh._n 14.6_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n efficient_o for_o our_o salvation_n so_o that_o the_o great_a thing_n we_o be_v to_o expect_v from_o this_o power_n be_v conviction_n of_o conscience_n and_o conversion_n of_o heart_n if_o the_o blindness_n of_o thy_o mind_n if_o the_o hardness_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v too_o heavy_a a_o stone_n for_o thou_o to_o remove_v then_o lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n to_o christ_n say_v o_o lord_n thou_o have_v power_n over_o all_o flesh_n thou_o can_v subdue_v and_o conquer_v every_o man_n heart_n no_o man_n no_o angel_n can_v do_v this_o therefore_o take_v thou_o the_o sole_a glory_n in_o do_v of_o it_o four_o as_o it_o be_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n this_o power_n reach_v to_o so_o the_o main_a and_o chief_a effect_n of_o this_o power_n be_v spiritual_a and_o such_o as_o tend_v to_o salvation_n spiritual_a to_o give_v faith_n to_o give_v repentance_n to_o man_n when_o i_o be_o lift_v up_o say_v christ_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o unto_o i_o joh._n 12.32_o though_o christ_n as_o god_n make_v the_o world_n all_o thing_n be_v support_v and_o bear_v up_o by_o he_o heb._n 1._o yet_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o considerable_a as_o what_o be_v do_v to_o man_n salvation_n therefore_o he_o make_v the_o great_a end_n of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v he_o come_v to_o dissolve_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n his_o title_n that_o he_o have_v be_v in_o reference_n to_o heavenly_a advantage_n he_o be_v call_v jesus_n because_o he_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o christ_n because_o furnish_v with_o all_o fitness_n and_o fullness_n to_o be_v a_o saviour_n the_o jew_n indeed_o they_o look_v for_o a_o messiah_n that_o shall_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o the_o captivity_n and_o bondage_n they_o be_v in_o they_o hope_v for_o such_o a_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n that_o shall_v restore_v they_o to_o their_o ancient_a temporal_a glory_n but_o this_o carnal_a prejudice_n be_v their_o undo_n power_n five_o this_o power_n must_v needs_o be_v infinite_a for_o although_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o he_o have_v power_n over_o all_o flesh_n that_o therefore_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o infinite_a yet_o if_o you_o do_v regard_v the_o end_n why_o he_o have_v all_o this_o power_n it_o must_v necessary_o be_v infinite_a for_o it_o be_v to_o gather_v and_o save_v a_o people_n out_o of_o the_o world_n to_o justify_v their_o person_n to_o sanctify_v their_o nature_n it_o be_v to_o judge_v all_o man_n at_o the_o last_o day_n now_o how_o can_v he_o be_v judge_n of_o all_o man_n life_n yea_o their_o secret_a and_o heart_n sin_n if_o he_o have_v not_o infinite_a knowledge_n and_o although_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o infinity_n and_o omnisciency_n yet_o the_o person_n that_o be_v the_o judge_n must_v be_v so_o qualify_v this_o infinite_a power_n which_o christ_n have_v on_o one_o side_n proclaim_v unspeakable_a terror_n to_o christ_n enemy_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n ineffable_a joy_n to_o his_o friend_n it_o six_o this_o power_n be_v arbitrary_a in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o he_o open_v this_o man_n heart_n and_o leave_v another_o shut_v he_o cure_v this_o blind_a eye_n and_o leave_v another_o in_o darkness_n mat._n 11.27_o when_o christ_n have_v acknowl_v that_o sovereign_a arbitrary_a power_n of_o god_n in_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n to_o babe_n and_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n he_o add_v all_o thing_n be_v deliver_v i_o of_o my_o father_n no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o so_o then_o this_o gracious_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o indifferent_o exercise_v upon_o all_o to_o some_o christ_n reveal_v the_o will_n of_o god_n effectual_o to_o other_o not_o there_o be_v many_o publican_n beside_o matthew_n yet_o to_o he_o christ_n make_v know_v himself_o and_o not_o to_o other_o many_o pharisee_n beside_o paul_n that_o be_v not_o so_o bitter_a and_o violent_a against_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o christ_n make_v he_o feel_v this_o glorious_a power_n on_o his_o heart_n and_o other_o not_o appear_v these_o thing_n lay_v as_o foundation_n let_v we_o consider_v some_o of_o the_o remarkable_a particular_n wherein_o christ_n dominion_n over_o all_o flesh_n and_o especial_o the_o church_n do_v so_o appear_v that_o so_o we_o may_v take_v heed_n how_o we_o neglect_v he_o soul_n and_o first_o this_o be_v a_o remarkable_a instance_n of_o his_o power_n to_o appoint_v a_o ministry_n for_o the_o conversion_n and_o save_v of_o people_n soul_n whatsoever_o thy_o thought_n may_v be_v about_o the_o nullity_n or_o uselesnesse_n of_o it_o yet_o this_o be_v a_o clear_a effect_n of_o his_o power_n mat._n 28._o when_o he_o say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v he_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n than_o he_o give_v his_o apostle_n commission_n to_o go_v teach_v and_o baptize_v all_o nation_n observe_v the_o reason_n why_o christ_n begin_v with_o this_o preface_n all_o power_n be_v give_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o go_v and_o baptize_v because_o it_o be_v of_o high_a concernment_n to_o encourage_v and_o embolden_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o consider_v who_o servant_n they_o be_v who_o work_n they_o go_v about_o they_o come_v from_o he_o who_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v they_o against_o the_o whole_a world_n how_o easy_o may_v the_o apostle_n be_v deject_v with_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o work_n and_o their_o utter_a unfitnesse_n what_o be_v such_o poor_a and_o despicable_a man_n as_o they_o be_v to_o set_v against_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o he_o that_o have_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n bid_v they_o go_v preach_v go_v baptize_v and_o thus_o eph._n 4.11_o the_o ministry_n be_v there_o make_v the_o great_a and_o noble_a work_n christ_n do_v upon_o his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n so_o that_o to_o oppose_v christ_n ministry_n to_o set_v against_o this_o be_v to_o set_v against_o christ_n himself_o it_o be_v not_o their_o power_n but_o christ_n power_n thou_o will_v destroy_v grace_n second_o this_o power_n go_v further_a than_o to_o appoint_v a_o mere_a ministry_n he_o bless_v it_o he_o give_v success_n he_o make_v it_o to_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n this_o make_v the_o apostle_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n so_o much_o exalt_v christ_n and_o advance_v he_o while_o one_o cry_v up_o this_o teacher_n another_o that_o he_o bid_v they_o remember_v that_o all_o the_o paul_n and_o apollo_n in_o the_o word_n though_o never_o so_o eminent_a be_v but_o minister_n by_o who_o they_o do_v believe_v yea_o col._n 3.19_o those_o that_o do_v so_o much_o admire_v and_o set_v up_o angel_n who_o easy_o may_v be_v think_v to_o do_v more_o than_o the_o best_a minister_n yet_o paul_n throw_v all_o such_o doctrine_n down_o to_o the_o ground_n and_o bid_v they_o hold_v the_o head_n christ_n from_o whence_o all_o part_n of_o the_o body_n receive_v their_o nourishment_n oh_o this_o can_v be_v press_v enough_o on_o you_o many_o be_v not_o so_o profane_a to_o despise_v the_o ministry_n to_o cry_v down_o ordinance_n though_o there_o be_v such_o in_o the_o world_n but_o than_o they_o be_v without_o christ_n in_o the_o ministry_n without_o christ_n in_o the_o ordinance_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o some_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n so_o these_o be_v without_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o the_o ministry_n or_o ordinance_n but_o christ_n in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o which_o communicate_v virtue_n and_o efficacy_n three_o christ_n power_n be_v see_v in_o convince_a
by_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n though_o most_o people_n may_v have_v some_o general_a apprehension_n about_o god_n yet_o about_o christ_n they_o have_v none_o at_o all_o unless_o by_o hear-say_n it_o behove_v we_o therefore_o who_o be_v call_v christian_n to_o know_v what_o that_o christ_n be_v who_o we_o worship_v and_o trust_v in_o for_o salvation_n and_o the_o great_a ignorance_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a death_n he_o be_v the_o door_n he_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o way_n and_o the_o life_n joh._n 14.6_o all_o that_o miss_n of_o he_o be_v carry_v violent_o to_o death_n and_o destruction_n for_o 1._o where_o this_o ignorance_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o can_v be_v any_o historical_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o least_o degree_n of_o faith_n that_o can_v be_v and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o historical_a faith_n there_o can_v be_v any_o justify_n for_o how_o can_v a_o man_n trust_v in_o christ_n for_o salvation_n who_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v to_o be_v so_o that_o historical_a or_o as_o some_o call_v it_o dogmatic_a faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n both_o god_n and_o man_n be_v the_o first_o stone_n that_o must_v be_v lay_v in_o our_o christian_a building_n and_o without_o this_o we_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o learned_a the_o alphabet_n of_o our_o religion_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o thousand_o that_o have_v no_o explicit_a formal_a faith_n in_o this_o fundamental_a point_n i_o grant_v they_o have_v a_o traditional_a form_n whereby_o they_o say_v they_o believe_v in_o christ_n but_o they_o have_v no_o express_a faith_n concern_v the_o person_n and_o nature_n of_o christ_n now_o that_o traditional_a form_n be_v not_o a_o reasonable_a worship_n of_o god_n as_o the_o scripture_n express_v it_o rom._n 12._o where_o we_o be_v command_v to_o give_v up_o ourselves_o as_o reasonable_a sacrifice_n but_o here_o man_n be_v as_o bruit_v beast_n in_o respect_n of_o any_o express_a formal_a faith_n insomuch_o that_o hundred_o of_o people_n if_o they_o be_v ask_v what_o they_o believe_v concern_v christ_n they_o can_v give_v any_o know_v or_o express_a answer_n oh_o how_o near_o be_v such_o foolish_a and_o stupid_a person_n to_o the_o very_a brink_n of_o hell●_n and_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v if_o it_o be_v faith_n then_o it_o can_v be_v knowledge_n vbi_fw-la ride_v non_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la and_o by_o all_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n be_v oppose_v but_o that_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v afterward_o viz._n how_o that_o faith_n do_v necessary_o require_v knowledge_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n that_o faith_n be_v opposite_a unto_o for_o the_o present_a we_o conclude_v that_o where_o there_o be_v not_o some_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n there_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o a_o bare_a historical_a faith_n they_o have_v no_o faith_n that_o have_v no_o knowledge_n i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v believe_v say_v paul_n 2_o tim._n 1.12_o 2._o where_o gross_a ignorance_n be_v if_o there_o can_v be_v historical_a faith_n about_o christ_n much_o less_o can_v there_o be_v save_v and_o justify_v faith_n a_o fiducial_a rely_v and_o rest_v of_o the_o soul_n upon_o he_o as_o the_o mediator_n appoint_v by_o god_n the_o scripture_n do_v often_o speak_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n rom._n 5.1_o that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n rom._n 3.25_o so_o that_o justification_n and_o faith_n be_v inseparable_o join_v together_o but_o where_o ignorance_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o can_v be_v any_o of_o this_o save_a faith_n for_o can_v any_o man_n trust_v in_o that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o know_v of_o yea_o though_o such_o ignorant_a man_n say_v they_o trust_v in_o christ_n yet_o because_o they_o know_v not_o christ_n these_o be_v but_o traditional_a and_o customary_a word_n they_o speak_v false_o and_o say_v they_o do_v not_o know_v what_o philosopher_n say_v there_o be_v actio_fw-la hominis_fw-la and_o actio_fw-la humana_fw-la a_o humane_a action_n be_v that_o which_o come_v express_o or_o imply_o from_o reason_n but_o actio_fw-la hominis_fw-la be_v that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o a_o man_n but_o not_o as_o a_o man_n as_o the_o move_n of_o the_o foot_n or_o lift_v up_o a_o straw_n which_o come_v from_o the_o imagination_n mere_o so_o true_o we_o may_v say_v there_o be_v actio_fw-la christiani_n and_o actio_fw-la christiani_n a_o christian_a action_n be_v that_o which_o come_v from_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o but_o that_o be_v a_o action_n of_o one_o that_o be_v a_o christian_n in_o name_n and_o profession_n only_o that_o do_v such_o action_n as_o other_o do_v but_o not_o from_o any_o knowledge_n or_o faith_n within_o only_o from_o custom_n and_o mere_a tradition_n if_o then_o knowledge_n be_v in_o all_o the_o historical_a and_o justify_v act_n of_o faith_n where_o shall_v the_o stupid_a and_o ignorant_a man_n appear_v 3._o the_o gross_a ignorant_a man_n can_v admire_v bless_v and_o praise_n god_n for_o jesus_n christ_n the_o medtatour_n this_o be_v evident_a he_o that_o know_v not_o the_o nature_n office_n and_o use_v of_o christ_n what_o he_o be_v and_o why_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n what_o be_v that_o which_o he_o do_v for_o we_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v ever_o be_v affect_v with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o with_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n this_o make_v the_o apostle_n pray_v that_o they_o may_v know_v the_o breadth_n and_o depth_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n eph._n 3._o for_o without_o this_o knowledge_n all_o god_n love_n and_o christ_n love_n be_v disregard_v we_o read_v of_o paul_n divine_a rapture_n and_o holy_a ecstasy_n because_o of_o christ_n i_o desire_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v 2_o cor._n 2.2_o it_o be_v impossible_a in_o a_o lively_a manner_n to_o know_v this_o divine_a truth_n of_o god_n the_o father_n love_n in_o send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o die_v for_o we_o and_o not_o break_v out_o in_o heavenly_a praise_n and_o admiration_n but_o the_o blind_a ignorant_a man_n see_v nothing_o of_o this_o admirable_a mystery_n as_o he_o say_v it_o fall_v out_o ill_o with_o artificer_n when_o ignorant_a man_n judge_v of_o their_o work_n thus_o certain_o god_n lose_v much_o of_o his_o glory-christ_n much_o of_o his_o honour_n when_o ignorant_a man_n only_o speak_v of_o this_o doctrine_n as_o christ_n joh._n 4._o say_v to_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n if_o thou_o have_v know_v who_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o thou_o thou_o will_v have_v ask_v for_o the_o water_n of_o life_n so_o here_o if_o thou_o have_v know_v what_o be_v in_o this_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n if_o thy_o heart_n do_v meditate_v and_o study_v on_o it_o thou_o will_v be_v more_o affect_v and_o enlarge_v in_o thy_o affection_n to_o christ_n 4._o where_o gross_a ignorance_n be_v of_o christ_n there_o can_v be_v any_o improve_n of_o he_o for_o all_o these_o bless_a effect_n to_o which_o he_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n christ_n be_v of_o god_n unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n 1_o cor._n 1._o of_o his_o fullness_n we_o all_o receive_v grace_n for_o grace_n joh._n 3._o but_o the_o ignorant_a and_o unwise_a man_n can_v make_v any_o advantage_n of_o this_o the_o ignorant_a man_n know_v not_o the_o virtue_n and_o good_a use_n may_v be_v make_v of_o such_o herb_n as_o grow_v in_o the_o field_n but_o the_o wise_a artist_n do_v solomon_n ask_v why_o be_v a_o price_n put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o fool_n see_v he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o if_o the_o man_n in_o the_o parable_n that_o find_v a_o pearl_n have_v not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o pearl_n he_o will_v not_o have_v sell_v all_o to_o have_v buy_v it_o so_o then_o let_v there_o be_v never_o so_o much_o fullness_n and_o sufficiency_n in_o christ_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o fountain_n seal_v up_o and_o a_o garden_n enclose_v to_o the_o ignorant_a man_n and_o this_o must_v necessary_o exclude_v such_o from_o heaven_n because_o in_o christ_n be_v all_o our_o salvation_n whatsoever_o conduce_v to_o our_o happiness_n be_v bind_v up_o in_o he_o now_o the_o ignorant_a man_n not_o know_v this_o treasure_n must_v needs_o perish_v in_o his_o sin_n 5._o where_o a_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o christ_n he_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o damnable_a condition_n because_o thereby_o he_o be_v also_o ignorant_a of_o himself_o he_o know_v not_o his_o own_o sinfulness_n and_o misery_n and_o so_o can_v desire_v a_o remedy_n these_o two_o be_v necessary_o know_v together_o or_o unknown_a christ_n the_o physician_n and_o sin_n a_o desperate_a disease_n christ_n a_o saviour_n and_o the_o sinner_n that_o be_v lose_v but_o the_o
very_o considerable_a for_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi at_o the_o close_a of_o his_o life_n may_v strive_v to_o say_v lord_n i_o have_v fast_v twice_o a_o week_n i_o wash_v my_o hand_n my_o house_n my_o pot_n etc._n etc._n thus_o i_o have_v glorify_v thou_o but_o what_o say_v christ_n in_o vain_a do_v you_o worship_v i_o mat._n 16.9_o and_o who_o have_v require_v these_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n thus_o the_o papist_n if_o he_o say_v i_o have_v go_v a_o pilgrimage_n i_o have_v make_v such_o penal_a satisfaction_n i_o have_v say_v so_o many_o ave_fw-la maries_fw-fr i_o have_v do_v penance_n i_o have_v receive_v extreme_a unction_n now_o because_o this_o be_v not_o require_v or_o command_v work_n therefore_o it_o will_v have_v no_o reward_n so_o then_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o see_v thy_o work_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o god_n will_n but_o look_v that_o it_o be_v according_a that_o it_o have_v god_n superscription_n and_o the_o stamp_n of_o his_o command_n upon_o it_o though_o it_o be_v not_o malum_fw-la yet_o it_o be_v aliud_fw-la though_o it_o be_v not_o contra_fw-la yet_o it_o be_v preter_fw-la and_o indeed_o what_o be_v preter_fw-la because_o not_o secundum_fw-la must_v needs_o be_v contra_fw-la it_o be_v contrary_a to_o god_n will_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o command_v negligent_a 3._o they_o can_v have_v the_o text_n comfort_v at_o all_o who_o be_v slothful_a and_o negligent_a though_o they_o do_v not_o contrary_a or_o different_a yet_o they_o be_v sluggish_a and_o so_o will_v not_o work_v at_o all_o in_o god_n vineyard_n this_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o he_o who_o have_v but_o one_o talon_n yet_o because_o he_o do_v not_o improve_v it_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o utter_a darkness_n cast_v that_o unprofitable_a servant_n mat._n 25.30_o he_o do_v not_o spend_v the_o talon_n he_o bring_v it_o sure_a and_o safe_a to_o his_o master_n but_o he_o be_v unprofitable_a and_o must_v be_v cast_v into_o utter_a darkness_n so_o the_o tree_n that_o bring_v forth_o no_o fruit_n though_o it_o do_v not_o bad_a fruit_n must_v be_v cut_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n oh_o how_o great_o be_v this_o to_o be_v consider_v for_o who_o life_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o he_o as_o bernard_n do_v aut_fw-la peccatum_fw-la aut_fw-la sterilitas_fw-la either_o the_o boggy_a mire_n of_o sin_n or_o the_o parch_a wilderness_n of_o barrenness_n and_o if_o that_o be_v so_o great_a a_o sin_n christ_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o curse_v it_o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o most_o holy_a have_v sad_a thought_n about_o their_o death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o their_o account_n it_o be_v not_o then_o a_o negative_a religion_n that_o will_v true_o comfort_v thou_o but_o a_o positive_a fruitful_a one_o it_o will_v be_v no_o solid_a joy_n of_o conscience_n to_o say_v and_o no_o more_o lord_n i_o have_v be_v no_o drunkard_n no_o adulterer_n no_o profane_a person_n for_o god_n look_v for_o a_o zealous_a active_a fruitful_a way_n in_o all_o holiness_n yet_o how_o do_v the_o mere_a negation_n of_o sin_n make_v many_o have_v strong_a confidence_n of_o their_o excellent_a condition_n whereas_o if_o they_o do_v consider_v the_o positive_a fruitful_a part_n of_o godliness_n and_o see_v how_o far_o they_o be_v off_o it_o horror_n will_v overwhelm_v they_o consider_v then_o how_o fruitful_a be_v thy_o duty_n be_v thy_o hour_n for_o god_n may_v thou_o not_o cry_v out_o many_o time_n hodie_fw-la diem_fw-la perdidi_fw-la do_v thou_o put_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o practice_n to_o redeem_v the_o time_n ephes_n 5.16_o heaven_n will_v not_o be_v heaven_n if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o negation_n of_o torment_n not_o a_o positive_a affluence_n of_o all_o happiness_n so_o neither_o be_v that_o godliness_n which_o be_v a_o bare_a absence_n of_o sin_n not_o a_o fruitful_a abound_v in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n 4._o there_o can_v be_v any_o solid_a comfort_n at_o the_o time_n of_o account_n lukewarm_a where_o there_o be_v a_o prevail_a lukewarmnesse_n and_o formality_n though_o the_o work_n god_n require_v be_v do_v outward_o eli_n can_v give_v a_o good_a account_n of_o reprove_v his_o son_n though_o he_o do_v reprove_v they_o because_o there_o be_v remissness_n and_o coldness_n in_o it_o a_o partial_a coldness_n and_o dulness_n be_v in_o the_o best_a service_n we_o do_v paul_n have_v find_v the_o relic_n of_o corruption_n rebel_a against_o grace_n and_o contra_fw-la vitia_fw-la pugnamus_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la vincamus_fw-la sed_fw-la ne_fw-la vincamus_fw-la jebusite_n will_n abide_v in_o the_o land_n but_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o total_a plenary_a lukewarmnesse_n such_o which_o christ_n condemn_v revel_v 2._o when_o he_o wish_v she_o be_v either_o hot_a or_o cold_a but_o be_v lukewarm_a god_n will_v spew_v she_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n that_o expression_n be_v to_o show_v how_o noisome_a and_o intolerable_a such_o person_n and_o such_o duty_n be_v to_o god_n never_o then_o think_v a_o mere_a formal_a and_o customary_a way_n of_o religious_a duty_n will_v ever_o be_v any_o comfort_n to_o thou_o no_o god_n will_v say_v thy_o heart_n be_v not_o in_o these_o thou_o do_v not_o serve_v i_o as_o the_o world_n as_o thy_o lust_n and_o hereupon_o thou_o will_v wish_v oh_o that_o my_o duty_n have_v be_v more_o spiritual_a more_o fervent_a more_o heavenly_a these_o very_a duty_n thou_o put_v thy_o trust_n in_o will_v run_v like_o sharp_a point_n into_o thy_o very_a heart_n thus_o you_o have_v hear_v what_o person_n can_v have_v any_o comfort_n at_o all_o now_o we_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o thing_n even_o to_o the_o godly_a day_n though_o they_o may_v have_v comfort_n for_o the_o main_a yet_o will_v great_o dishearten_v and_o diminish_v their_o joy_n then_o there_o will_v be_v fear_n against_o hope_n doubt_n against_o faith_n agony_n against_o joy_n that_o even_o as_o nature_n and_o death_n will_v in_o a_o terrible_a manner_n conflict_n together_o so_o will_v their_o hope_n and_o fear_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v but_o that_o even_o a_o christian_a walk_v most_o tender_o and_o circumspect_o may_v at_o his_o death_n have_v no_o joy_n and_o assurance_n god_n for_o many_o just_a and_o wise_a end_n do_v sometime_o dispense_v it_o so_o that_o he_o who_o live_v very_o holy_o may_v yet_o die_v very_o uncomfortable_o it_o be_v so_o with_o christ_n though_o there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a reason_n and_o why_o not_o with_o his_o member_n only_o when_o god_n deal_v so_o they_o be_v mere_a exercise_n to_o increase_v their_o crown_n of_o glory_n they_o be_v not_o so_o proper_o affliction_n for_o sin_n as_o job_n have_v those_o extraordinary_a trial_n not_o for_o sin_n though_o he_o be_v not_o without_o sin_n but_o trial_n and_o thereby_o to_o make_v he_o more_o glorious_a but_o i_o shall_v speak_v of_o such_o particular_n as_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n tend_v to_o make_v our_o end_n very_o sad_a and_o heavy_a and_o therefore_o let_v he_o who_o will_v look_v on_o death_n as_o jacob_n do_v on_o his_o son_n joseph_n chariot_n not_o with_o grief_n but_o with_o joy_n as_o a_o convoy_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n thing_n take_v heed_n of_o these_o thing_n as_o so_o many_o dangerous_a work_n and_o 1._o immoderate_a affection_n to_o lawful_a thing_n they_o do_v so_o dead_a the_o heart_n and_o clog_v the_o soul_n that_o when_o a_o man_n come_v to_o die_v these_o earthly_a thing_n lie_v upon_o the_o heart_n as_o too_o much_o undigested_a meat_n upon_o the_o stomach_n make_v thou_o extreme_a sick_a and_o full_a of_o pain_n the_o apostle_n then_o 1_o cor._n 7._o prescribe_v a_o comfortable_a way_n to_o die_v joyful_o where_o he_o say_v those_o that_o buy_v must_v be_v as_o if_o they_o buy_v not_o they_o that_o marry_v as_o if_o they_o marry_v not_o the_o green_a the_o wood_n be_v the_o hard_a to_o be_v consume_v the_o more_o lively_a and_o active_a thy_o worldly_a affection_n be_v there_o must_v be_v the_o great_a opposition_n to_o leave_v all_o and_o be_v with_o god_n the_o ripe_a apple_n fall_v from_o the_o tree_n very_o easy_o the_o godly_a man_n die_v be_v compare_v to_o ripe_a corn_n so_o that_o if_o these_o earthy_a and_o worldly_a affection_n be_v not_o dry_v up_o in_o thou_o it_o will_v much_o hinder_v thy_o joy_n this_o green_a wood_n will_v make_v a_o great_a smoke_n hezekiah_n though_o he_o have_v this_o comfortable_a evidence_n yet_o say_v the_o text_n he_o weep_v soar_v some_o attribute_n that_o to_o the_o old_a testament_n dispensation_n where_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a happiness_n be_v more_o general_o promise_v then_o under_o the_o new_a and_o therefore_o death_n be_v a_o privation_n of_o that_o do_v more_o affect_v they_o howsoever_o this_o be_v sure_a a_o heart_n not_o wean_v from_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o must_v be_v part_v from_o be_v like_o a_o tooth_n not_o cut_v from_o
that_o prayer_n do_v not_o draw_v god_n to_o we_o but_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n in_o our_o earnest_a petition_n we_o do_v not_o bring_v god_n will_v to_o we_o but_o we_o to_o he_o prayer_n be_v a_o golden_a chain_n that_o reach_v from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n and_o although_o we_o think_v to_o move_v god_n to_o we_o yet_o we_o move_v ourselves_o to_o he_o as_o the_o ship_n that_o be_v fasten_v with_o the_o cable_n do_v not_o bring_v the_o haven_n to_o it_o but_o it_o be_v self_n to_o the_o haven_n so_o that_o the_o change_n prayer_n make_v be_v not_o on_o god_n but_o on_o ourselves_o 6._o prayer_n be_v necessary_a because_o hereby_o faith_n be_v draw_v out_o in_o all_o the_o choice_n and_o excellent_a effect_n of_o it_o prayer_n without_o faith_n be_v like_o the_o musical_a instrument_n without_o a_o hand_n to_o make_v a_o sound_a melodious_a it_o be_v like_o a_o picture_n without_o life_n but_o of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o qualification_n of_o a_o prayer_n the_o demand_n than_o may_v be_v quest_n what_o be_v that_o prayer_n and_o how_o must_v it_o be_v accomplish_v that_o be_v a_o fruitful_a prayer_n such_o a_o prayer_n as_o will_v bring_v about_o what_o we_o desire_v and_o 1._o it_o must_v be_v the_o prayer_n of_o a_o righteous_a man_n such_o who_o wash_v himself_o from_o his_o sin_n for_o sin_n they_o have_v a_o tongue_n and_o they_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n answ_n and_o will_v quick_o cry_v loud_o than_o our_o prayer_n hence_o a_o wicked_a man_n prayer_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n pro._n 28.9_o and_o the_o blind_a man_n can_v see_v and_o say_v this_o god_n hear_v not_o the_o prayer_n of_o a_o sinner_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a sinner_n a_o sinner_n wilful_o go_v on_o in_o his_o wickedness_n and_o such_o god_n will_v not_o hear_v but_o then_o there_o be_v a_o sinner_n pray_v mourn_a and_o repent_v as_o the_o publican_n who_o say_v lord_n be_v merciful_a to_o i_o a_o sinner_n and_o such_o sin_n god_n do_v hear_v nay_o all_o man_n be_v sinner_n in_o this_o respect_n and_o thus_o god_n shall_v hear_v no_o prayer_n at_o all_o if_o he_o do_v not_o hear_v such_o but_o for_o other_o kind_n of_o sin_n of_o which_o all_o place_n be_v full_a those_o god_n do_v loath_a and_o their_o duty_n david_n have_v express_v it_o full_o if_o i_o regard_v iniquity_n in_o my_o heart_n god_n will_v not_o hear_v i_o psa_n 66.18_o oh_o then_o look_v to_o thyself_o and_o thy_o life_n when_o thou_o go_v to_o pray_v if_o the_o tongue_n that_o pray_v be_v a_o curse_v swear_v tongue_n if_o the_o eye_n lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n be_v full_a of_o wantonness_n and_o adultery_n if_o the_o hand_n hold_v out_o towards_o heaven_n be_v full_a of_o violence_n fraud_n and_o injustice_n god_n be_v of_o pure_a eye_n then_o to_o behold_v such_o 2._o they_o must_v be_v fervent_a zealous_a prayer_n the_o effectual_a fervent_a prayer_n of_o a_o righteous_a man_n avail_v much_o jam._n 5._o he_o must_v be_v righteous_a but_o many_o a_o righteous_a godly_a man_n prayer_n may_v have_v no_o success_n if_o it_o be_v full_a of_o dulness_n distraction_n and_o lukewarmnesse_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v fervent_a we_o must_v be_v jacob_n wrestle_v with_o god_n ere_o we_o can_v be_v israel_n prevail_v with_o god_n prayer_n be_v compare_v to_o incense_n and_o it_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o god_n spirit_n which_o be_v compare_v to_o fire_n rom._n 8._o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v groan_n unutterable_a it_o be_v not_o then_o enough_o to_o pray_v unless_o it_o be_v fervent_o and_o zealous_o otherwise_o they_o be_v like_o a_o bird_n without_o wing_n or_o a_o messenger_n without_o foot_n 5._o they_o must_v be_v believe_a prayer_n let_v he_o ask_v in_o faith_n nothing_o doubt_v for_o he_o that_o doubt_v be_v to_o conclude_v he_o shall_v not_o receive_v any_o thing_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a our_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v absolute_a in_o other_o thing_n our_o fiducial_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o our_o doctrinal_a faith_n so_o far_o as_o those_o thing_n make_v for_o our_o good_a and_o god_n glory_n our_o faith_n be_v to_o conclude_v of_o they_o this_o be_v the_o grace_n that_o crown_v our_o prayer_n this_o grace_n god_n high_o honour_v insomuch_o that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v say_v its_o impossible_a to_o please_v god_n heb._n 11._o now_o though_o presumption_n be_v a_o weed_n that_o come_v up_o of_o itself_o yet_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n own_o plant_n and_o great_a opposition_n great_a difficulty_n there_o be_v to_o put_v this_o forth_o last_o it_o must_v be_v persevere_v and_o constant_a prayer_n our_o saviour_n speak_v that_o parable_n of_o the_o unjust_a judge_n that_o we_o shall_v pray_v incessant_o not_o give_v god_n over_o till_o we_o obtain_v the_o blessing_n not_o to_o be_v discourage_v though_o we_o meet_v with_o many_o delay_n and_o great_a discouragement_n like_o that_o woman_n of_o canaan_n who_o prayer_n have_v a_o holy_a kind_n of_o impudence_n and_o pertinacy_n in_o this_o to_o take_v no_o denial_n use_v of_o exhortation_n to_o be_v a_o people_n much_o in_o prayer_n that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o thou_o as_o of_o paul_n behold_v he_o pray_v and_o of_o thy_o house_n as_o of_o god_n temple_n a_o house_n of_o prayer_n oh_o what_o shall_v those_o profane_a person_n and_o profane_a family_n expect_v but_o god_n dreadful_a vengeance_n who_o rise_v and_o go_v to_o bed_n without_o such_o fervent_a zealous_a prayer_n never_o expect_v good_a from_o that_o man_n or_o family_n that_o be_v not_o tender_a and_o constant_a in_o this_o duty_n he_o be_v like_o a_o tree_n in_o the_o barren_a wilderness_n that_o can_v bring_v forth_o any_o fruit_n and_o do_v not_o say_v i_o have_v no_o time_n to_o pray_v this_o and_o that_o business_n put_v it_o out_o will_v thou_o have_v time_n to_o receive_v mercy_n from_o god_n and_o no_o time_n to_o go_v by_o prayer_n to_o god_n shall_v the_o sluggard_n sit_v still_o neither_o plough_n or_o sow_v or_o take_v pain_n and_o yet_o expect_v his_o ground_n shall_v yield_v a_o plentiful_a crop_n oh_o what_o hope_n will_v there_o be_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v the_o ministry_n work_v conversion_n by_o it_o if_o you_o be_v more_o diligent_a in_o this_o duty_n but_o how_o great_o be_v it_o neglect_v by_o most_o and_o those_o that_o do_v it_o how_o formal_a and_o customary_a be_v they_o so_o that_o it_o bring_v no_o good_a at_o all_o to_o the_o soul_n think_v of_o these_o thing_n more_o and_o tremble_v under_o they_o sermon_n xxvi_o of_o heavenly_a glory_n as_o oppose_v to_o earthly_a and_o how_o the_o hope_n thereof_o earnest_o seek_v and_o pray_v for_o will_v comfort_v a_o man_n against_o the_o fear_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o trial_n and_o affliction_n joh_n 17.5_o and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v the_o next_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o be_v pursue_v be_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o christ_n pray_v for_o for_o christ_n be_v near_o the_o bitter_a part_n of_o his_o cross_n and_o see_v nothing_o but_o gall_n for_o he_o to_o drink_v he_o comfort_v and_o encourage_v himself_o with_o that_o glory_n which_o be_v provide_v for_o he_o and_o this_o make_v he_o so_o earnest_a in_o prayer_n for_o it_o where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o may_v see_v the_o arrogant_a presumption_n of_o those_o who_o hold_v they_o be_v above_o prayer_n they_o will_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n as_o angel_n do_v but_o their_o perfection_n be_v such_o that_o they_o need_v not_o present_a petition_n in_o prayer_n what_o a_o diabolical_a delusion_n be_v this_o for_o christ_n himself_o though_o he_o confess_v no_o sin_n in_o prayer_n yet_o be_v not_o above_o petition_n as_o we_o see_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v which_o can_v be_v that_o they_o be_v so_o pure_a as_o to_o be_v without_o sin_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o glorify_a body_n and_o therefore_o for_o that_o glory_n in_o heaven_n they_o ought_v to_o pray_v but_o why_o do_v we_o meddle_v with_o these_o who_o indeed_o need_v prayer_n most_o and_o that_o to_o see_v themselves_o delude_v and_o to_o be_v in_o a_o far_o more_o dangerous_a estate_n than_o many_o other_o person_n we_o come_v 1._o to_o the_o description_n of_o this_o glory_n pray_v for_o from_o the_o nature_n or_o inherent_a property_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o glory_n with_o god_n own_o self_n glorify_v i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n this_o as_o you_o hear_v be_v speak_v partly_o opposite_o to_o humane_a glory_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o christ_n despise_v the_o shame_n and_o be_v not_o
by_o the_o apostle_n diotrephes_n he_o love_v to_o have_v pre-eminence_n other_o account_v gain_v godliness_n and_o have_v their_o heart_n exercise_v with_o covetous_a practice_n there_o be_v no_o heretic_n ever_o prove_v a_o firebrand_n in_o the_o church_n but_o one_o of_o these_o cause_n for_o the_o most_o part_n move_v he_o which_o make_v austin_n put_v it_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o heretic_n that_o he_o do_v alicujus_fw-la temporalis_fw-la commodi_fw-la causâ_fw-la either_o invent_v or_o propagate_v false_a opinion_n but_o of_o unity_n more_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o follow_a verse_n use_v of_o exhortation_n to_o follow_v christ_n in_o this_o prayer_n give_v the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n no_o rest_n by_o prayer_n till_o he_o have_v give_v rest_n to_o his_o church_n and_o the_o guide_v thereof_o cry_v out_o as_o the_o disciple_n do_v to_o christ_n to_o rebuke_v the_o wind_n and_o tempest_n for_o the_o ship_n we_o be_v in_o s●is●nking_v these_o division_n be_v not_o only_a sin_n but_o sad_a prognostic_n of_o god_n wrath_n as_o if_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o unchurch_n we_o and_o to_o make_v we_o no_o more_o his_o people_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n sermon_n lx._n the_o great_a pattern_n of_o unity_n the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o the_o unity_n that_o be_v between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n against_o the_o socinian_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n shall_v endeavour_v after_o a_o perfect_a unity_n even_o to_o be_v one_o as_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v also_o some_o rule_n guide_v thereunto_o john_n 17.11_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o and_o i_o be_v we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o close_a of_o the_o prayer_n which_o contain_v the_o example_n or_o pattern_n of_o that_o unity_n christ_n pray_v for_o it_o be_v not_o for_o every_o kind_n of_o unity_n he_o pray_v for_o but_o he_o will_v have_v they_o imitate_v that_o unity_n which_o be_v most_o absolute_a and_o complete_a even_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n before_o we_o raise_v the_o doctrine_n this_o particular_a must_v be_v vindicate_v for_o the_o arian_n and_o socinian_o think_v this_o a_o pregnant_a place_n to_o overthrow_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o therefore_o here_o can_v be_v mean_v a_o essential_a unity_n thus_o they_o argue_v such_o a_o unity_n the_o father_n and_o christ_n have_v as_o the_o disciple_n be_v pray_v for_o to_o have_v but_o that_o be_v a_o unity_n and_o concord_n and_o agreement_n not_o of_o essence_n therefore_o christ_n and_o the_o father_n be_v not_o essential_o one._n this_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o specious_a and_o plausible_a but_o first_o grant_v that_o we_o shall_v interpret_v the_o oneness_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o text_n of_o consent_n in_o will_n and_o agreement_n as_o calvin_n do_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o other_o place_n speak_v of_o their_o oneness_n shall_v be_v also_o understand_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n yea_o from_o the_o oneness_n of_o will_n between_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v necessary_o infer_v the_o oneness_n of_o their_o nature_n so_o that_o although_o we_o shall_v understand_v this_o principal_o of_o unity_n in_o accord_n yet_o by_o consequence_n it_o will_v prove_v unity_n of_o nature_n for_o in_o free_a agent_n where_o there_o be_v the_o same_o will_n there_o there_o be_v also_o the_o same_o nature_n where_o there_o be_v the_o same_o humane_a will_n there_o be_v the_o same_o humane_a nature_n and_o where_o be_v the_o same_o divine_a will_n there_o be_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n indeed_o with_o man_n it_o be_v the_o same_o specifical_a nature_n not_o numerical_a but_o because_o there_o be_v one_o god_n only_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v the_o same_o numerical_a nature_n but_o in_o the_o second_o place_n we_o be_v to_o take_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n in_o as_o large_a a_o sense_n at_o least_o not_o to_o exclude_v it_o as_o in_o other_o place_n it_o be_v now_o in_o other_o place_n especial_o john_n 10.30_o there_o we_o have_v undeniable_a argument_n to_o prove_v it_o be_v a_o essential_a unity_n i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one._n bellarmine_n though_o otherwise_o a_o papist_n yet_o in_o this_o point_n against_o the_o arian_n be_v orthodox_n and_o do_v strong_o maintain_v the_o truth_n against_o they_o now_o these_o three_o argument_n he_o bring_v that_o the_o unity_n speak_v of_o in_o that_o verse_n be_v essential_a first_o because_o otherwise_o our_o saviour_n argument_n there_o mention_v will_v be_v insufficient_a for_o thus_o christ_n argue_v none_o can_v pluck_v my_o sheep_n out_o of_o my_o hand_n because_o none_o can_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n why_o do_v this_o follow_v because_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o so_o then_o if_o christ_n and_o the_o father_n have_v not_o one_o power_n and_o so_o one_o divine_a nature_n the_o argument_n will_v not_o hold_v a_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o jew_n do_v understand_v he_o in_o this_o sense_n and_o therefore_o they_o take_v up_o stone_n to_o stone_n he_o and_o mark_v the_o reason_n vers_fw-la 33._o because_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n make_v thyself_o god_n if_o our_o saviour_n have_v mean_v no_o more_o than_o unity_n of_o agreement_n with_o god_n will_n the_o jew_n know_v that_o every_o godly_a man_n have_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n write_v in_o his_o heart_n therefore_o they_o can_v not_o think_v that_o blasphemy_n they_o do_v not_o think_v that_o david_n make_v himself_o a_o god_n when_o he_o delight_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n make_v his_o will_n to_o accord_v with_o go_n three_o because_o our_o saviour_n upon_o this_o accusation_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o thing_n or_o charge_v they_o with_o falsehood_n but_o further_a prove_v it_o because_o he_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n therefore_o he_o bid_v they_o believe_v his_o work_n if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o which_o be_v to_o make_v they_o know_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o the_o father_n upon_o which_o word_n its_o say_v again_o vers_n 39_o they_o seek_v again_o to_o take_v he_o imply_v he_o have_v not_o correct_v but_o confirm_v that_o more_o which_o they_o call_v blasphemy_n in_o the_o three_o place_n though_o our_o saviour_n pray_v the_o disciple_n may_v be_v one_o as_o he_o and_o the_o father_n be_v yet_o their_o argument_n will_v not_o hold_v unless_o they_o can_v show_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v always_o use_v as_o a_o note_n of_o equality_n and_o not_o similitude_n only_o but_o we_o can_v show_v the_o contrary_a in_o scripture_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v for_o similitude_n not_o equality_n luke_n 6.36_o be_v you_o merciful_a as_o your_o heavenly_a father_n be_v merciful_a there_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o similitude_n only_o for_o how_o can_v a_o drop_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o ocean_n so_o 1_o john_n 3.2_o he_o that_o have_v this_o hope_n purify_v himself_o as_o god_n be_v pure_a here_o it_o must_v be_v a_o note_n of_o similitude_n for_o none_o can_v be_v equal_a to_o god_n in_o purity_n and_o thus_o here_o in_o the_o text_n endeavour_v to_o be_v one_o as_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n not_o that_o you_o can_v equalise_v it_o but_o propound_v that_o absolute_a and_o perfect_a rule_n to_o follow_v insomuch_o that_o if_o this_o place_n be_v well_o consider_v it_o make_v against_o all_o arian_n and_o so_o be_v pro_fw-la testimonio_fw-la fidei_fw-la which_o they_o pervert_v in_o argumentum_fw-la perfidiae_fw-la and_o augustine_n observation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v christ_n say_v he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o with_o we_o or_o that_o they_o and_o we_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v one_o but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v one_o what_o more_o may_v be_v say_v upon_o this_o be_v to_o be_v speak_v unto_o vers_fw-la 21._o be_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v one_o but_o they_o be_v to_o endeavour_v after_o the_o most_o perfect_a unity_n to_o be_v one_o as_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v oh_o this_o consideration_n shall_v make_v we_o blush_v and_o ashamed_a to_o see_v the_o contention_n and_o difference_n that_o be_v do_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n ever_o show_v such_o discord_n we_o shall_v never_o take_v our_o eye_n off_o this_o pattern_n let_v we_o but_o consider_v in_o how_o many_o respect_n we_o be_v to_o aim_v at_o such_o a_o unity_n as_o be_v between_o they_o union_n first_o the_o unity_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v a_o
spiritual_a unity_n insomuch_o that_o some_o have_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a bond_n of_o the_o trinity_n it_o be_v not_o a_o carnal_a bodily_a unity_n but_o spiritual_a and_o thus_o ought_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v though_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n and_o blood_n yet_o if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o spirit_n compose_v and_o sanctify_v of_o they_o they_o will_v be_v like_o rope_n of_o sand_n this_o the_o apostle_n urge_v admirable_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 4_o etc._n etc._n and_o vers_n 13._o where_o enumerate_v the_o several_a gift_n and_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n he_o still_o add_v it_o be_v the_o same_o spirit_n and_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v in_o the_o same_o bond_n this_o than_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o unity_n the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n be_v to_o move_v work_n and_o guide_v all_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n as_o it_o be_v the_o same_o soul_n that_o inform_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n or_o as_o some_o philosopher_n say_v there_o be_v one_o intellectus_fw-la agens_fw-la that_o be_v universal_a to_o all_o man_n there_o may_v be_v agreement_n for_o civil_a and_o political_a consideration_n but_o this_o will_v never_o hold_v till_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a unity_n as_o tully_n observe_v that_o all_o friendship_n found_v upon_o bonum_fw-la utile_fw-la or_o jucundum_fw-la will_v never_o endure_v unless_o they_o add_v bonum_fw-la honestum_fw-la we_o may_v add_v further_o even_o that_o moral_a honest_a good_a be_v not_o ground_n enough_o unless_o it_o be_v bonum_fw-la spiritual_fw-la if_o then_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v work_v the_o same_o measure_n of_o illumination_n and_o sanctification_n in_o all_o there_o will_v not_o be_v any_o disagreement_n but_o though_o all_o godly_a man_n have_v the_o same_o spirit_n yet_o not_o the_o same_o gift_n or_o grace_n or_o degree_n of_o grace_n and_o for_o want_v of_o this_o come_v contention_n individed_a second_o the_o unity_n between_o father_n and_o son_n be_v constant_a and_o individed_a there_o can_v never_o be_v a_o separation_n between_o they_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v always_o one_o though_o the_o manifestation_n of_o this_o be_v more_o under_o the_o gospel-light_n than_o it_o be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o thus_o ought_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o agree_v constant_o perpetual_o for_o if_o at_o any_o time_n contention_n break_v forth_o it_o prove_v like_o a_o dead_a fly_n in_o a_o box_n of_o ointment_n it_o make_v all_o the_o other_o good_a they_o have_v to_o be_v ill_o speak_v of_o let_v they_o never_o be_v so_o learned_a so_o godly_a so_o zealous_a yet_o discord_n will_v scandalize_v all_o and_o this_o constancy_n of_o unity_n be_v to_o be_v preserve_v against_o all_o outward_a or_o inward_a cause_n of_o difference_n outward_a be_v the_o persecution_n and_o opposition_n of_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n inward_a be_v from_o our_o own_o corruption_n and_o distemper_n against_o both_o these_o we_o be_v to_o watch_v that_o so_o our_o peace_n be_v not_o weaken_v unity_n three_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v a_o holy_a unity_n they_o be_v one_o in_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o heavenly_a they_o only_a will_n what_o be_v good_a and_o the_o sun_n may_v soon_o become_v a_o dunghill_n than_o they_o will_v what_o be_v evil_a such_o a_o unity_n let_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n endeavour_v after_o a_o unity_n in_o error_n a_o unity_n in_o mischief_n and_o wickedness_n be_v such_o a_o unity_n as_o the_o devil_n have_v among_o themselves_o that_o unity_n among_o papist_n which_o they_o boast_v of_o be_v it_o not_o like_o the_o unity_n of_o herod_n and_o pilate_n both_o agree_v against_o christ_n mankind_n four_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v full_a of_o love_n and_o bowel_n to_o mankind_n they_o both_o be_v one_o in_o this_o to_o procure_v the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n the_o father_n he_o will_v to_o send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o die_v that_o reproachful_a death_n and_o to_o be_v a_o atonement_n for_o man_n sin_n the_o son_n do_v voluntary_o and_o ready_o undertake_v this_o bitter_a cup_n than_o they_o be_v one_o to_o procure_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n if_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n have_v disagree_v no_o salvation_n have_v be_v possible_a oh_o than_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n will_v make_v this_o use_n of_o their_o unity_n that_o they_o may_v all_o as_o one_o man_n endeavour_v the_o conversion_n and_o edification_n of_o soul_n how_o happy_a will_v it_o be_v to_o lay_v all_o difference_n and_o dispute_n aside_o that_o they_o may_v bring_v people_n to_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n what_o a_o spur_n shall_v this_o be_v to_o we_o shall_v the_o father_n not_o think_v his_o son_n too_o dear_a shall_v the_o son_n not_o think_v his_o blood_n too_o dear_a for_o man_n soul_n and_o shall_v we_o ruin_v soul_n by_o contention_n do_v we_o not_o take_v the_o devil_n work_v then_o upon_o we_o and_o not_o christ_n five_o the_o unity_n of_o father_n and_o son_n be_v a_o well-ordered_a unity_n though_o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o nature_n yet_o this_o breed_v not_o a_o confusion_n of_o the_o person_n the_o father_n be_v the_o father_n unity_n and_o the_o son_n be_v the_o son_n for_o all_o this_o unity_n they_o be_v not_o unus_fw-la though_o they_o he_o unum_fw-la and_o thus_o the_o unity_n among_o god_n minister_n and_o the_o people_n must_v not_o degenerate_a into_o confusion_n the_o difference_n between_o shepherd_n and_o sheep_n between_o governor_n and_o govern_v in_o the_o church_n must_v be_v maintain_v when_o the_o devil_n can_v divide_v then_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o will_v bring_v unity_n into_o confusion_n the_o difference_n of_o gift_n and_o office_n shall_v not_o be_v keep_v up_o as_o corah_n and_o his_o company_n tell_v aaron_n they_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o all_o the_o congregation_n be_v holy_a as_o well_o as_o they_o but_o the_o apostle_n though_o he_o press_v unity_n fervent_o and_o that_o because_o we_o be_v one_o body_n yet_o he_o show_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o member_n in_o that_o body_n every_o member_n be_v not_o the_o eye_n so_o neither_o be_v every_o one_o a_o preacher_n a_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n this_o unity_n end_v in_o all_o schism_n and_o disorder_n at_o last_o last_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v most_o perfect_a and_o absolute_a absolute_a it_o be_v a_o essential_a unity_n and_o although_o we_o can_v have_v this_o unity_n yet_o this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o a●m_v at_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o unity_n we_o can_v not_o to_o suffer_v the_o least_o grudge_a and_o repine_v thought_n not_o the_o least_o proud_a or_o envious_a thought_n against_o one_o another_o to_o love_v more_o than_o father_n or_o child_n than_o husband_n or_o wife_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o relation_n that_o cause_v unity_n for_o they_o be_v but_o one_o flesh_n this_o call_v for_o a_o high_a unity_n we_o have_v hear_v the_o duty_n and_o necessity_n of_o unity_n as_o also_o the_o cause_n that_o break_v it_o what_o good_a remedy_n may_v be_v prescribe_v to_o keep_v this_o excellent_a harmony_n although_o i_o shall_v not_o launch_v into_o this_o whole_a point_n defer_v it_o till_z vers_n 21._o yet_o i_o shall_v name_v some_o first_o we_o be_v earnest_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o bestow_v such_o a_o spirit_n of_o concord_n unity_n it_o be_v not_o the_o industry_n or_o policy_n of_o all_o the_o conciliator_n moderator_n and_o pacificator_n in_o the_o world_n to_o bring_v this_o about_o but_o god_n only_o can_v bend_v man_n heart_n for_o it_o hence_o we_o see_v our_o saviour_n pray_v to_o the_o father_n for_o this_o agreement_n and_o god_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o peace_n because_o he_o only_o can_v make_v it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o state_n it_o be_v from_o god_n anger_n and_o wrath_n when_o a_o evil_a contentious_a spirit_n be_v among_o the_o prophet_n as_o well_o as_o when_o he_o send_v a_o lie_a spirit_n among_o they_o when_o the_o temple_n be_v to_o be_v destroy_v the_o rend_n of_o it_o be_v a_o prognostique_n of_o the_o desolation_n thereof_o and_o when_o god_n will_v unchurch_n a_o church_n and_o make_v a_o garden_n a_o wilderness_n common_o division_n be_v the_o antecedent_n cause_v of_o it_o a_o second_o rule_n be_v to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o part_n and_o gift_n of_o other_o as_o much_o as_o our_o own_o when_o god_n be_v glorify_v by_o they_o and_o to_o be_v compassionate_o affect_v in_o the_o weakness_n and_o fail_n of_o other_o these_o two_o be_v necessary_o join_v together_o and_o they_o be_v able_a to_o cement_v and_o unite_v all_o difference_n the_o former_a be_v to_o
retain_v the_o wicked_a inclination_n of_o the_o world_n mind_v only_o worldly_a thing_n now_o though_o the_o world_n be_v many_o time_n and_o it_o may_v be_v here_o take_v for_o that_o society_n of_o man_n that_o be_v heathenish_a and_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o christ_n thus_o the_o church_n and_o the_o world_n be_v oppose_v 1_o cor._n 5.10_o yet_o we_o may_v extend_v it_o further_o even_o to_o such_o as_o do_v outward_o profess_v christ_n but_o in_o work_n do_v deny_v he_o as_o be_v more_o to_o be_v show_v 2._o there_o be_v the_o act_n itself_o hate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o preterperfect_a tense_n it_o have_v hate_v they_o already_o though_o they_o have_v not_o much_o torment_v it_o by_o their_o preach_n but_o it_o will_v more_o hate_v they_o when_o christ_n be_v remove_v and_o their_o preach_n more_o universal_a it_o comprehend_v all_o time_n it_o have_v it_o do_v and_o it_o will_v hate_v they_o and_o hatred_n you_o hear_v be_v worse_a than_o anger_n be_v more_o fix_v and_o permanent_a the_o cause_n of_o this_o be_v because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o love_n be_v to_o its_o like_a so_o hatred_n be_v to_o that_o which_o be_v unlike_a and_o contrary_a in_o the_o scripture_n some_o learned_a man_n say_v to_o hate_n be_v sometime_o take_v to_o love_v less_o not_o a_o absolute_a hatred_n but_o a_o respective_a love_n mat._n 6.24_o he_o will_v love_v one_o and_o hate_v the_o other_o i_o e._n less_o love_n and_o for_o this_o end_n they_o bring_v that_o place_n rom._n 9.3_o jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v where_o they_o will_v expound_v hate_n of_o a_o less_o love_n but_o whatever_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o former_a place_n this_o latter_a will_v admit_v of_o no_o such_o exposition_n as_o the_o context_n will_v easy_o evidence_n 3._o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o a_o good_a hatred_n rom._n 7.15_o that_o which_o i_o hate_v i_o do_v so_o we_o be_v command_v to_o hate_v our_o father_n and_o mother_n to_o hate_v our_o own_o life_n luk._n 14.26_o joh._n 12.25_o for_o christ_n sake_n david_n also_o say_v he_o hate_v they_o which_o hate_v god_n with_o a_o perfect_a hatred_n i._n e._n a_o full_a complete_a hatred_n he_o have_v no_o love_n at_o all_o to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o wickedness_n and_o their_o incurable_a enmity_n against_o god_n though_o in_o other_o respect_v he_o pity_v and_o love_v they_o last_o there_o be_v a_o wicked_a and_o evil_a hatred_n of_o which_o the_o text_n speak_v obs_n doct._n that_o the_o wicked_a man_n of_o the_o world_n have_v and_o will_v always_o hate_v those_o that_o be_v godly_a it_o have_v be_v so_o of_o old_a and_o will_v be_v so_o to_o the_o last_o wicked_a man_n that_o breathe_v no_o soon_o be_v there_o a_o wicked_a man_n and_o a_o godly_a but_o this_o hatred_n break_v out_o into_o all_o cruelty_n cain_n hate_v abel_n and_o why_o because_o his_o own_o work_n be_v nought_o and_o his_o brother_n good_a 1_o joh._n 3.12_o no_o less_o will_v serve_v then_o the_o blood_n of_o sheep_n such_o cruel_a wolf_n consider_v to_o open_v this_o doctrine_n consider_v these_o thing_n hatred_n first_o that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a hatred_n with_o the_o schoolman_n one_o be_v call_v odium_n inimicitiae_fw-la a_o hatred_n of_o enmity_n whereby_o a_o man_n will_v evil_a to_o he_o because_o it_o be_v his_o evil_n even_o as_o amor_fw-la amicitiae_fw-la a_o will_n of_o friendship_n will_v the_o good_a to_o a_o person_n love_v because_o it_o be_v his_o good_a 2._o there_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o hatred_n which_o the_o ancient_a schoolman_n have_v no_o name_n for_o it_o but_o afterward_o it_o be_v call_v odium_n abominationis_fw-la or_o offensionis_fw-la when_o a_o man_n be_v offend_v at_o and_o hate_v such_o a_o object_n that_o be_v evil_a but_o not_o the_o person_n yea_o we_o may_v love_v he_o dear_o thus_o the_o child_n hate_v the_o death_n of_o his_o father_n odio_fw-la abominationis_fw-la but_o love_v his_o father_n yea_o because_o he_o love_v he_o therefore_o he_o hate_v his_o death_n now_o that_o hatred_n whereby_o the_o world_n hate_v godly_a man_n be_v odium_n inimicitiae_fw-la it_o come_v from_o a_o inward_a irreconcilable_a displacency_n to_o the_o godly_a it_o be_v terminate_v upon_o their_o person_n because_o they_o be_v such_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n represent_v his_o nature_n and_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n which_o have_v a_o imbred_a enmity_n against_o man_n so_o that_o though_o never_o so_o much_o evil_n shall_v befall_v the_o godly_a their_o good_n spoil_v their_o name_n blast_v yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v and_o because_o they_o still_o be_v alive_a the_o world_n will_v hate_v they_o it_o second_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o hatred_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o two_o head_n 1._o the_o contrariety_n that_o be_v between_o the_o nature_n and_o action_n of_o the_o godly_a so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o love_v any_o godly_a man_n no_o nor_o such_o as_o never_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o they_o or_o meddle_v with_o they_o there_o be_v a_o odium_n naturale_fw-la which_o arise_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n such_o a_o antipathy_n be_v often_o mention_v by_o writer_n the_o serpent_n that_o be_v young_a though_o never_o hurt_v by_o any_o man_n yet_o because_o they_o know_v they_o of_o such_o a_o stamp_n they_o can_v love_v they_o it_o be_v natural_a they_o can_v give_v any_o reason_n hoc_fw-la tantum_fw-la possum_fw-la dicere_fw-la non_fw-la amo_fw-la te_fw-la you_o do_v not_o love_v he_o why_o do_v he_o ever_o weary_a you_o do_v he_o ever_o speak_v to_o you_o no_o but_o yet_o he_o can_v love_v he_o so_o that_o as_o love_n consist_v in_o the_o consonancy_n and_o conveniency_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n love_v thus_o hatred_n be_v in_o the_o dissonancy_n and_o contrariety_n of_o that_o to_o we_o which_o we_o hate_v the_o 2_o cause_n of_o hatred_n be_v ignorance_n when_o man_n know_v not_o that_o excellency_n and_o worth_n which_o be_v in_o such_o person_n and_o the_o just_a cause_n of_o love_n which_o if_o we_o do_v we_o shall_v quick_o lay_v aside_o our_o hatred_n and_o true_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n the_o world_n hate_v because_o of_o their_o ignorance_n they_o know_v not_o what_o godliness_n be_v nor_o what_o godly_a man_n be_v they_o know_v not_o their_o life_n their_o aim_n their_o end_n but_o judge_n of_o they_o as_o hypocrite_n proud_a and_o mind_v only_a self-end_n and_o therefore_o their_o hatred_n increase_v thus_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o they_o have_v know_v what_o christ_n be_v they_o will_v never_o have_v crucify_v he_o 1_o cor._n 2.8_o and_o so_o they_o be_v say_v to_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o thing_n they_o know_v not_o judas_n 10._o do_v thou_o then_o rail_v and_o deride_v at_o godly_a man_n it_o be_v thy_o blindness_n and_o folly_n thou_o know_v not_o their_o close_a walk_v with_o god_n thou_o understand_v not_o the_o heavenly_a privilege_n they_o enjoy_v thou_o do_v not_o conceive_v of_o their_o humiliation_n for_o their_o infirmity_n judge_v themselves_o before_o god_n worse_a than_o thou_o can_v judge_v they_o oh_o if_o thy_o eye_n be_v open_a thou_o will_v say_v these_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n oh_o that_o my_o latter_a end_n may_v be_v like_o one_o of_o they_o and_o of_o such_o man_n the_o world_n be_v not_o worthy_a it_o three_o consider_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o hatred_n and_o that_o be_v in_o three_o step_n and_o degree_n 1._o a_o inward_a willing_a of_o all_o evil_n that_o may_v hurt_v they_o and_o that_o because_o it_o be_v evil_a to_o will_v a_o man_n some_o evil_n for_o his_o good_a may_v be_v lawful_a as_o when_o david_n pray_v put_v they_o in_o fear_n o_o lord_n that_o they_o may_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v man_n psa_n 9.20_o thus_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v pray_v for_o affliction_n upon_o those_o enemy_n that_o be_v curable_a that_o by_o their_o affliction_n they_o may_v repent_v and_o be_v humble_v before_o god_n but_o hatred_n have_v not_o this_o goodness_n it_o will_v evil_a because_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o for_o evil_n sake_n it_o rejoice_v in_o the_o evil_a that_o befall_v a_o godly_a man_n as_o part_v of_o its_o own_o good_a and_o happiness_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o all_o wicked_a man_n they_o rejoice_v as_o if_o some_o great_a good_a have_v befall_v they_o when_o some_o great_a evil_n have_v come_v upon_o the_o godly_a 2._o their_o hatred_n break_v out_o into_o all_o all_o hard_a censorious_a and_o uncharitable_a speech_n all_o slander_n and_o contumely_n into_o cruel_a mock_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o heb._n 11.36_o the_o hatred_n in_o the_o heart_n will_v soon_o be_v see_v in_o the_o
be_v equal_a in_o nature_n and_o dignity_n they_o be_v all_o god_n and_o infinite_o bless_v for_o evermore_o yet_o the_o scripture_n do_v represent_v unto_o we_o a_o order_n in_o their_o operation_n ad_fw-la extra_fw-la to_o us-ward_n especial_o in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n one_o operation_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o father_n another_o to_o the_o son_n and_o another_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o father_n be_v constant_o apply_v the_o send_n of_o christ_n his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n as_o at_o the_o second_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n gal._n 4.4_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n god_n send_v forth_o his_o son_n and_o 1_o john_n 4.9_o it_o be_v the_o father_n that_o send_v he_o so_o that_o the_o original_n of_o all_o our_o peace_n and_o salvation_n be_v the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n 2._o that_o which_o be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o son_n be_v to_o be_v send_v to_o be_v the_o person_n that_o shall_v procure_v our_o redemption_n and_o 3._o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o be_v send_v both_o by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o application_n of_o those_o benefit_n which_o he_o shall_v procure_v for_o we_o therefore_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o send_v he_o joh._n 14.16_o and_o christ_n say_v he_o will_v send_v he_o joh._n 16_o 7._o thus_o he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o now_o he_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n as_o a_o mediator_n the_o holiness_n in_o adam_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n absolute_o consider_v but_o now_o it_o cause_v holiness_n in_o believer_n relative_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o in_o god_n dispensation_n about_o man_n salvation_n there_o be_v a_o appropriate_v order_n in_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o three_o person_n second_o the_o mission_n or_o send_v of_o christ_n here_o speak_v of_o do_v not_o relate_v to_o he_o as_o the_o second_o person_n but_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n for_o so_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v not_o send_v but_o beget_v and_o thus_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o speak_v of_o he_o in_o that_o respect_n call_v he_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n but_o this_o mission_n be_v in_o time_n and_o of_o a_o voluntary_a dispensation_n whereas_o the_o other_o be_v natural_a and_o of_o eternity_n christ_n be_v always_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o not_o always_o send_v to_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o his_o church_n unless_o in_o the_o purpose_n and_o decree_n of_o god_n so_o that_o this_o send_n of_o christ_n respect_v he_o as_o god_n and_o man_n and_o denote_v that_o incarnation_n of_o he_o with_o the_o discharge_n of_o all_o those_o duty_n that_o thereby_o he_o undertake_v three_o god_n send_v of_o he_o do_v signify_v the_o authoritative_a mission_n and_o call_v of_o he_o to_o that_o work_n the_o apostle_n diligent_o press_v this_o heb._n 5.5_o that_o christ_n glorify_v not_o himself_o but_o be_v call_v by_o god_n to_o his_o priesthood_n call_v of_o god_n to_o be_v ●_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melohisedech_n yea_o ch._n 7.21_o the_o apostle_n press_v this_o that_o he_o be_v make_v a_o highpriest_n by_o a_o oath_n the_o lord_n swear_v and_o will_v not_o repent_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o and_o certain_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a comfort_n to_o we_o when_o we_o shall_v read_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o solemn_o invest_v with_o this_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n to_o sanctify_v our_o nature_n to_o procure_v our_o salvation_n thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o those_o that_o have_v not_o a_o call_v be_v say_v to_o be_v null_n and_o invalid_a they_o have_v not_o powerful_a efficacy_n and_o success_n but_o christ_n be_v authorize_v by_o god_n to_o be_v thy_o saviour_n he_o have_v his_o commission_n to_o do_v it_o he_o will_v not_o take_v this_o work_n in_o hand_n till_o he_o be_v call_v unto_o it_o four_o the_o father_n do_v not_o only_o call_v he_o thus_o to_o this_o wonderful_a employment_n but_o he_o do_v qualify_v and_o fit_v he_o with_o all_o ability_n for_o that_o work_n he_o pour_v out_o his_o spirit_n upon_o his_o humane_a nature_n without_o measure_n so_o that_o as_o those_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o call_v to_o any_o office_n be_v anoint_v thus_o christ_n have_v not_o a_o temporal_a but_o a_o spiritual_a unction_n psal_n 45.7_o there_o god_n be_v say_v to_o anoint_v he_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n therefore_o joh._n 6.27_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o have_v seal_v he_o to_o this_o work_n thus_o christ_n acknowledge_v when_o he_o say_v a_o body_n thou_o have_v prepare_v for_o i_o the_o meaning_n be_v he_o have_v a_o universal_a fitness_n for_o the_o work_n and_o this_o also_o be_v of_o great_a comfort_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o call_v to_o be_v our_o saviour_n but_o he_o be_v qualify_v with_o all_o sufficiency_n thereunto_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o a_o poor_a humble_a sinner_n can_v desire_v in_o a_o saviour_n but_o there_o be_v a_o treasury_n of_o it_o in_o he_o col._n 1._o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v oh_o then_o why_o do_v not_o the_o people_n of_o god_n believe_v more_o firm_o and_o walk_v more_o comfortable_o what_o do_v they_o want_v which_o be_v not_o in_o this_o christ_n shall_v christ_n send_v his_o officer_n to_o work_v and_o endue_v they_o with_o proportionable_a power_n and_o shall_v not_o the_o father_n send_v he_o with_o all_o fitness_n and_o fullness_n to_o that_o work_n five_o in_o that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v send_v there_o be_v imply_v that_o the_o fountain_n from_o which_o our_o salvation_n do_v arise_v be_v the_o mere_a goodwill_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n the_o father_n so_o that_o although_o our_o justification_n sanctification_n and_o glorification_n be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v for_o christ_n sake_n that_o we_o enjoy_v they_o yet_o the_o send_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o world_n and_o give_v he_o to_o become_v our_o mediator_n be_v whole_o from_o the_o absolute_a good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n christ_n do_v not_o merit_v his_o incarnation_n he_o do_v not_o merit_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n no_o this_o be_v say_v to_o be_v god_n love_n not_o that_o hereby_o we_o be_v to_o make_v comparison_n as_o if_o the_o second_o person_n love_v we_o less_o than_o the_o first_o as_o the_o socinian_n will_v divide_v but_o to_o admire_v the_o great_a love_n of_o either_o in_o their_o distinct_a operation_n that_o conceit_n also_o be_v vain_a of_o some_o that_o say_v god_n upon_o the_o fore_a sight_n of_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n to_o become_v our_o saviour_n and_o presuppose_v this_o determinate_a choice_n do_v therefore_o appoint_v he_o to_o be_v our_o mediator_n this_o they_o think_v will_v reconcile_v christ_n necessary_a obedience_n and_o his_o freewill_n together_o but_o then_o the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v attribute_v it_o to_o god_n love_n and_o to_o the_o father_n love_n but_o christ_n love_n as_o a_o man_n which_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o six_o in_o that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v send_v there_o be_v imply_v that_o he_o be_v under_o a_o office_n and_o obligation_n of_o faithfulness_n and_o trust_n so_o that_o as_o it_o lay_v upon_o the_o apostle_n faithful_o and_o diligent_o to_o accomplish_v their_o office_n thus_o also_o it_o do_v upon_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v so_o often_o call_v it_o the_o command_n that_o he_o have_v from_o the_o father_n imply_v that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o accomplish_v all_o that_o for_o which_o he_o be_v send_v he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o unfaithfulness_n and_o disobedience_n and_o here_o also_o be_v contain_v much_o consolation_n for_o why_o shall_v the_o believer_n doubt_v of_o christ_n willingness_n and_o readiness_n to_o pardon_v sanctify_v or_o heal_v he_o see_v that_o christ_n be_v under_o a_o command_n to_o do_v this_o he_o be_v betrust_v with_o this_o work_n he_o will_v be_v find_v blame-worthy_a if_o he_o do_v not_o accomplish_v all_o that_o he_o be_v call_v unto_o as_o it_o be_v thy_o duty_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o he_o have_v voluntay_o submit_v to_o make_v it_o his_o duty_n to_o give_v thou_o rest_v and_o ease_n seven_o though_o christ_n be_v send_v and_o be_v thus_o under_o command_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v that_o this_o be_v do_v against_o his_o will_n as_o if_o the_o father_n do_v compel_v he_o to_o this_o work_n against_o his_o desire_n no_o how_o ready_o do_v he_o profess_v his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n loe_o i_o come_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n o_o lord_n thy_o law_n be_v
be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v sanctify_v of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o from_o christ_n thus_o sanctify_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o observe_v we_o that_o christ_n set_v himself_o apart_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o or_o he_o sanctify_v himself_o to_o become_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o divinity_n all_z the_o type_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v look_v to_o this_o the_o apostle_n desire_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o this_o this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o efficacy_n both_o of_o christ_n prayer_n and_o of_o we_o have_v christ_n only_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o not_o thus_o sanctify_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v effectual_a for_o our_o salvation_n imply_v let_v we_o open_v this_o point_n though_o i_o shall_v not_o insist_v long_o on_o it_o because_o i_o have_v otherwhere_o show_v that_o christ_n suffer_v by_o way_n of_o a_o atone_a sacrifice_n i_o shall_v now_o speak_v the_o more_o brief_o of_o it_o and_o first_o this_o sanctification_n of_o himself_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o do_v imply_v the_o exceed_a purity_n and_o holiness_n that_o be_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o peter_n call_v he_o the_o undefiled_a and_o spotless_a lamb_n 1_o peter_n 1.9_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o lamb_n that_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v be_v to_o be_v without_o blemish_n holiness_n not_o to_o be_v defective_a in_o any_o part_n and_o to_o be_v without_o spot_n there_o be_v to_o be_v no_o various_a colour_n upon_o it_o this_o be_v to_o signify_v the_o absolute_a purity_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o outward_a and_o inward_a sin_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n press_v the_o preeminency_n of_o christ_n our_o highpriest_n above_o those_o of_o the_o law_n because_o they_o have_v sin_n of_o their_o own_o and_o they_o be_v compass_v about_o with_o their_o own_o infirmity_n and_o so_o offer_v for_o themselves_o first_o hebr._fw-la 7.26_o he_o be_v there_o call_v holy_a harmless_a undefiled_a and_o separate_v from_o sinner_n and_o this_o purity_n and_o holiness_n be_v not_o only_o to_o qualify_v his_o person_n to_o be_v our_o mediator_n but_o it_o be_v part_n of_o that_o righteousness_n which_o be_v communicate_v to_o we_o therefore_o he_o say_v i_o sanctify_v myself_o for_o they_o and_o as_o he_o be_v make_v man_n for_o believer_n so_o also_o holy_a and_o undefiled_a for_o they_o it_o be_v true_a some_o divine_n distinguish_v in_o christ_n his_o justitia_fw-la personae_fw-la and_o his_o justitia_fw-la meriti_fw-la but_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v part_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o so_o they_o can_v be_v oppose_v to_o one_o another_o this_o be_v the_o wedding_n garment_n this_o be_v our_o elder_a brother_n clothes_n this_o be_v the_o fine_a linen_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o thou_o that_o complain_v of_o thy_o want_n of_o holiness_n thou_o be_v not_o sanctify_v in_o such_o a_o degree_n and_o measure_n as_o thou_o desire_v remember_v christ_n have_v sanctify_v himself_o for_o thou_o we_o second_o this_o do_v imply_v the_o ready_a and_o willing_a offer_v up_o of_o himself_o to_o this_o work_n and_o certain_o this_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n at_o which_o heaven_n and_o earth_n may_v be_v astonish_v this_o the_o angel_n wonder_v at_o and_o still_o desire_v to_o search_v into_o it_o more_o and_o more_o that_o christ_n shall_v come_v from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o lay_v aside_o the_o manifestation_n of_o all_o heavenly_a majesty_n and_o glory_n to_o be_v debase_v in_o so_o low_a a_o way_n make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n this_o can_v never_o be_v consider_v of_o enough_o no_o not_o by_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n to_o all_o eternity_n philip._n 2.6_o the_o apostle_n do_v there_o enlarge_v himself_o in_o this_o meditation_n and_o in_o another_o place_n how_o he_o become_v poor_a that_o we_o may_v make_v we_o rich_a two_o thing_n be_v admirable_a in_o this_o willing_a oblation_n of_o himself_o 1._o that_o he_o shall_v put_v himself_o in_o such_o a_o suffer_a condition_n as_o to_o be_v for_o a_o while_n without_o the_o sense_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o his_o father_n love_n to_o he_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n a_o expression_n to_o show_v the_o intimate_a close_a and_o secret_a delight_n and_o love_n he_o have_v from_o the_o father_n how_o unspeakable_a be_v it_o that_o he_o shall_v deprive_v himself_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o to_o put_v himself_o as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o heaven_n into_o a_o hell_n this_o be_v deep_a love_n than_o ever_o we_o can_v imagine_v or_o conceive_v no_o wonder_v the_o apostle_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o grace_n we_o be_v never_o able_a to_o go_v to_o the_o bottom_n of_o it_o but_o still_o there_o be_v more_o love_n and_o grace_v behind_o do_v the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n faint_v to_o see_v the_o temporal_a stateliness_n and_o magnificence_n of_o solomon_n how_o shall_v the_o believer_n at_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o heavenly_a glory_n be_v even_o ravish_v with_o admiration_n no_o wonder_n if_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o she_o be_v sick_a of_o love_n for_o this_o may_v do_v it_o it_o be_v more_o for_o christ_n to_o be_v one_o moment_n without_o the_o feel_n of_o his_o father_n love_n then_o to_o endure_v all_o those_o bodily_a torment_n he_o do_v endure_v my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o in_o the_o original_a it_o be_v my_o strong_a one_o he_o giveth_z unto_o god_n that_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a title_n because_o he_o be_v then_o so_o weak_a and_o infirm_a and_o deject_v in_o himself_o 2._o that_o he_o shall_v not_o thus_o only_o put_v himself_o out_o of_o comfort_n but_o also_o from_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o manifest_a glory_n and_o honour_n he_o may_v have_v retain_v to_o himself_o this_o also_o be_v very_o wonderful_a in_o this_o chapter_n he_o pray_v for_o that_o glory_n which_o yet_o he_o have_v with_o the_o father_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o have_v it_o in_o right_n but_o not_o in_o possession_n he_o voluntary_o divest_v himself_o of_o that_o that_o so_o he_o may_v accomplish_v our_o redemption_n job_n bewail_v once_o the_o bitter_a change_n that_o be_v upon_o he_o he_o that_o sit_v among_o prince_n to_o sit_v upon_o the_o dunghill_n scrape_v his_o soar_v this_o be_v a_o great_a change_n but_o this_o change_n that_o christ_n take_v upon_o himself_o be_v infinite_o far_o transcend_v it_o three_o in_o that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o sanctify_v himself_o mediator_n herein_o be_v imply_v the_o universal_a fitness_n that_o be_v in_o he_o for_o that_o work_n to_o sanctify_v and_o to_o be_v prepare_v or_o make_v fit_a be_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v also_o a_o treasure_n of_o exceed_v great_a comfort_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v every_o way_n a_o full_a and_o fit_a redeemer_n we_o have_v certain_o miscarry_v his_o fitness_n be_v see_v in_o regard_n 1._o of_o his_o person_n 2._o his_o office_n and_o 3._o the_o benefit_n thereof_o with_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o they_o the_o fitness_n in_o his_o person_n be_v that_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n person_n whatsoever_o some_o schoolman_n have_v think_v or_o imagine_v yet_o no_o mere_a man_n though_o qualify_v to_o the_o high_a with_o all_o manner_n of_o grace_n can_v have_v satisfy_v for_o man_n sin_n it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v be_v god_n for_o by_o this_o mean_n there_o be_v a_o infinite_a value_n worth_n and_o excellency_n put_v upon_o his_o do_n and_o suffering_n so_o that_o the_o worth_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n action_n do_v as_o far_o exceed_v our_o demerit_n as_o his_o person_n do_v we_o as_o god_n do_v man_n it_o be_v necessary_a also_o he_o shall_v be_v man_n for_o in_o that_o nature_n only_o can_v he_o suffer_v in_o that_o only_o can_v he_o die_v thus_o there_o be_v one_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n he_o than_o that_o must_v reconcile_v god_n and_o man_n must_v necessary_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n he_o must_v be_v medius_fw-la that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o mediator_n office_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v true_o say_v he_o be_v sanctify_v thereunto_o that_o be_v he_o be_v appoint_v and_o prepare_v for_o it_o 2._o he_o be_v fit_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n priest_n prophetical_a and_o king_n he_o be_v the_o trismegist_n if_o you_o do_v regard_v the_o threefold_a cord_n that_o do_v bind_v we_o sinner_n which_o we_o can_v never_o loose_v than_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o fit_a a_o saviour_n he_o be_v there_o be_v in_o we_o horrible_a blindness_n and_o darkness_n of_o
fervent_a affection_n of_o faith_n be_v you_o to_o meditate_v on_o this_o sacrifice_n this_o blood_n speak_v all_o good_a thing_n for_o thou_o sermon_n c._n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o priest_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n the_o property_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n the_o way_n how_o man_n come_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o its_o efficacy_n as_o to_o sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o justification_n joh_n 17.19_o i_o sanctify_v myself_o for_o they_o etc._n etc._n from_o the_o person_n sanctify_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o object-matter_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v sanctify_v and_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d myself_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n consecrate_v and_o offer_v their_o brute_n beast_n which_o though_o command_v by_o god_n to_o have_v perfect_a qualification_n in_o they_o yet_o because_o beast_n still_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n priesthood_n do_v far_o transcend_v that_o because_o it_o be_v his_o own_o precious_a body_n that_o he_o thus_o offer_v to_o be_v a_o oblation_n for_o himself_o itself_o from_o whence_o observe_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o the_o priest_n but_o the_o sacrifice_n itself_o he_o offer_v up_o himself_o in_o that_o bloody_a and_o ignominious_a death_n for_o our_o sake_n this_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n of_o our_o christian_a religion_n whether_o you_o do_v regard_v the_o doctrinal_a part_n of_o it_o as_o a_o truth_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o as_o it_o be_v declarative_a of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n the_o prophet_n isaiah_n cap._n 53._o be_v of_o old_a long_o before_o it_o be_v accomplish_v great_o affect_v with_o it_o and_o paul_n upon_o every_o occasion_n be_v large_o amplify_a this_o substantial_a point_n priesthood_n to_o clear_v it_o consider_v these_o introduction_n first_o that_o christ_n be_v both_o priest_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n every_o thing_n in_o christ_n be_v wonderful_a there_o be_v nothing_o in_o he_o after_o the_o ordinary_a manner_n of_o nature_n and_o therefore_o he_o may_v just_o by_o the_o prophet_n be_v call_v wonderful_a and_o as_o in_o other_o particular_n altar_n so_o in_o this_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v priest_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n priest_n he_o be_v in_o both_o his_o nature_n as_o god_n and_o man_n sacrifice_n he_o be_v in_o his_o humane_a nature_n because_o that_o only_o can_v suffer_v and_o altar_n he_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n because_o by_o that_o he_o be_v sanctify_v oh_o then_o the_o admirable_a wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o have_v thus_o appoint_v all_o fullness_n to_o be_v in_o he_o when_o abraham_n be_v to_o offer_v isaac_n and_o the_o child_n be_v bind_v ready_a to_o be_v sacrifice_v he_o ask_v his_o father_n but_o where_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n god_n say_v abraham_n will_v provide_v one_o sacrifice_n thus_o when_o all_o mankind_n like_o isaac_n be_v ready_a to_o be_v sacrifice_v to_o the_o eternal_a displeasure_n of_o god_n even_o than_o god_n find_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o second_o consider_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o be_v that_o there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o destruction_n or_o annihilation_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o a_o sacrament_n differ_v a_o sacrifice_n be_v by_o offer_v up_o of_o something_o to_o god_n a_o sacrament_n be_v when_o god_n offer_v and_o give_v something_o to_o we_o therefore_o when_o the_o papist_n make_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n also_o they_o speak_v repugnancy_n in_o a_o sacrament_n god_n give_v to_o we_o in_o a_o sacrifice_n we_o give_v to_o god_n now_o among_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v many_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o most_o of_o they_o do_v typical_o represent_v christ_n the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o the_o red_a heifer_n these_o be_v plain_o apply_v unto_o christ_n but_o above_o all_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n those_o that_o we_o call_v holocatomata_n whole_a burnt-offering_n these_o do_v in_o a_o most_o lively_a manner_n typify_v he_o for_o there_o the_o whole_a be_v to_o be_v burn_v in_o fire_n and_o offer_v to_o god_n which_o denote_v the_o great_a humiliation_n of_o christ_n both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o also_o the_o exquisite_a torment_n and_o suffering_n which_o be_v upon_o he_o so_o that_o he_o be_v wound_v all_o over_o for_o our_o transgression_n three_o take_v notice_n that_o he_o offer_v up_o his_o body_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n god_n it_o be_v in_o reference_n to_o he_o not_o mere_o in_o respect_n of_o man_n to_o witness_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o as_o every_o sacrifice_n ought_v to_o be_v it_o be_v whole_o in_o reference_n to_o god_n though_o tend_v thereby_o to_o our_o good_a it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o any_o but_o god_n because_o hereby_o be_v represent_v god_n supreme_a dominion_n and_o majesty_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o annihilation_n or_o destruction_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v now_o though_o christ_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v god_n yet_o by_o his_o death_n there_o be_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n though_o not_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n from_o either_o it_o be_v then_o unto_o god_n that_o he_o offer_v up_o himself_o four_o expiotion_n this_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o expiation_n and_o propitiation_n to_o atone_v and_o pacify_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o otherwise_o will_v have_v be_v a_o consume_a fire_n to_o all_o mankind_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o apostate_n angel_n sacrifice_n do_v imply_v some_o kind_n of_o expiation_n and_o by_o heathen_n be_v use_v to_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o their_o god_n and_o thus_o if_o christ_n body_n offer_v be_v true_o and_o proper_o a_o sacrifice_n than_o it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o by_o way_n of_o expiation_n and_o satisfaction_n now_o that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o expiatory_a sacrifice_n be_v plain_a by_o the_o apostle_n at_o large_a in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n where_o he_o compare_v christ_n die_v with_o those_o sacrifice_n and_o show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n once_a oblation_n of_o himself_o which_o comparison_n will_v be_v weak_a and_o absurd_a if_o christ_n death_n be_v not_o propitiatory_a no_o wonder_n then_o if_o the_o devil_n have_v raise_v up_o blasphemous_a heretic_n to_o overthrow_v this_o doctrine_n because_o in_o this_o be_v contain_v that_o happy_a reconciliation_n between_o god_n and_o a_o sinner_n in_o that_o christ_n shed_v his_o blood_n to_o atone_v for_o we_o be_v the_o whole_a hope_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n five_o the_o holy_a and_o just_a nature_n of_o god_n against_o sin_n be_v such_o it_o that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_a himself_n upon_o the_o cross_n for_o we_o it_o be_v hot_o dispute_v whether_o god_n may_v have_v forgive_v sin_n absolute_o without_o christ_n death_n or_o by_o any_o other_o way_n then_o by_o satisfaction_n but_o when_o all_o be_v say_v it_o be_v acknowledge_v it_o be_v the_o most_o convenient_a way_n and_o if_o we_o do_v suppose_v that_o god_n will_v save_v mankind_n no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o justice_n as_o well_o as_o mercy_n than_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o christ_n shall_v become_v man_n see_v no_o mere_a man_n can_v compensate_a god_n neither_o can_v the_o obedience_n of_o any_o man_n have_v delight_v god_n as_o much_o as_o adam_n disobedience_n do_v offend_v he_o therefore_o it_o be_v high_o derogatory_n from_o christ_n which_o durand_n say_v that_o if_o it_o have_v please_v god_n it_o may_v have_v be_v that_o as_o by_o adam_n disobedience_n all_o be_v make_v sinner_n so_o by_o the_o same_o adam_n obedience_n repent_v and_o believe_v all_o may_v have_v be_v make_v righteous_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o second_o place_n consider_v the_o property_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n and_o first_o it_o have_v infinite_a worth_n in_o it_o insomuch_o that_o have_v god_n ordain_v it_o so_o it_o it_o will_v have_v procure_v reconciliation_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o thousand_o world_n of_o sinner_n this_o be_v that_o which_o divine_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a price_n and_o ransom_n for_o all_o though_o not_o efficacious_a though_o therefore_o many_o be_v damn_v this_o do_v not_o arise_v from_o any_o weakness_n or_o insufficiency_n in_o christ_n death_n but_o from_o the_o wickedness_n and_o rebellion_n of_o man_n who_o refuse_v the_o mean_n to_o improve_v this_o ransom_n for_o their_o good_a there_o be_v infinite_a worth_n in_o it_o and_o that_o upon_o a_o threefold_a respect_n 1._o the_o person_n offer_v who_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n so_o that_o what_o dignity_n and_o worth_n the_o divine_a nature_n can_v put_v
argument_n seek_v for_o it_o at_o the_o father_n hand_n thus_o psal_n 2._o when_o god_n there_o declare_v his_o will_n of_o make_v he_o king_n over_o his_o church_n and_o give_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o a_o inheritance_n to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o christ_n be_v to_o ask_v and_o pray_v for_o such_o thing_n so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n christ_n pray_v even_o as_o all_o the_o godly_a do_v though_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o promise_v to_o bestow_v such_o glorious_a thing_n upon_o his_o penple_n yet_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o prayer_n that_o they_o must_v be_v possess_v of_o they_o god_n can_v give_v they_o otherwise_o neither_o do_v our_o prayer_n or_o christ_n prayer_n make_v god_n alter_v or_o change_v his_o mind_n only_a prayer_n be_v appoint_v by_o he_o as_o that_o medium_n whereby_o his_o purpose_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v 4._o christ_n pray_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n as_o he_o give_v thanks_o now_o we_o read_v he_o praise_v god_n several_a time_n yea_o they_o sing_v a_o hymn_n to_o god_n prayer_n be_v divide_v into_o petition_n and_o thanksgiving_n if_o then_o christ_n can_v give_v god_n praise_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o may_v make_v petition_n to_o he_o he_o praise_v god_n as_o the_o father_n of_o such_o mercy_n his_o soul_n be_v affect_v with_o and_o so_o he_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n of_o last_o these_o main_a reason_n be_v lay_v down_o then_o we_o may_v add_v christ_n pray_v for_o our_o example_n also_o it_o be_v wonder_n any_o shall_v be_v so_o transport_v with_o pride_n as_o to_o think_v themselves_o above_o prayer_n that_o they_o need_v not_o to_o pray_v when_o we_o see_v christ_n himself_o diligent_a in_o this_o duty_n so_o that_o as_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v of_o he_o and_o imitate_v the_o zeal_n patience_n and_o love_n that_o be_v in_o he_o so_o we_o be_v the_o religious_a conversation_n also_o of_o christ_n which_o be_v manifest_v in_o his_o fervent_a prayer_n unto_o god_n upon_o all_o occasion_n yet_o though_o christ_n do_v thus_o pray_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o christ_n prayer_n and_o we_o for_o first_o if_o we_o speak_v absolute_o of_o christ_n as_o a_o person_n so_o he_o need_v not_o to_o pray_v we_o for_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n therefore_o he_o can_v have_v do_v all_o thing_n the_o humane_a nature_n desire_v without_o any_o humble_a supplication_n unto_o the_o father_n it_o be_v then_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n only_o and_o his_o voluntary_a humiliation_n of_o himself_o otherwise_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n he_o may_v have_v do_v all_o thing_n by_o sole_a power_n and_o authority_n indeed_o there_o be_v some_o who_o hold_v that_o christ_n still_o in_o heaven_n as_o man_n do_v pray_v to_o god_n the_o father_n properly_z and_o formal_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o church_n and_o so_o understand_v those_o place_n where_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n and_o where_o he_o be_v say_v still_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o not_o say_v they_o that_o he_o pray_v in_o such_o a_o servile_a humble_a manner_n as_o he_o do_v here_o on_o earth_n yet_o they_o say_v it_o be_v more_o than_o mere_a a_o representation_n of_o himself_o or_o will_v that_o the_o father_n fulfil_v what_o he_o have_v purchase_v it_o be_v true_a and_o formal_a pray_v neither_o say_v they_o be_v this_o any_o more_o indecent_a and_o unbeseeming_a christ_n as_o man_n in_o heaven_n then_o praise_v of_o god_n which_o yet_o as_o man_n he_o do_v howsoever_o this_o be_v yet_o it_o be_v sure_a that_o when_o he_o do_v pray_v on_o earth_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o with_o such_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o indigency_n as_o any_o man_n or_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v pray_v for_o they_o can_v in_o any_o consideration_n help_v themselves_o 2._o neither_o do_v christ_n pray_v for_o any_o spiritual_a gracious_a mercy_n these_o be_v the_o chief_a matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n insomuch_o that_o temporal_a thing_n be_v pray_v for_o only_o with_o a_o submission_n unto_o god_n will_n and_o so_o far_o as_o they_o conduce_v to_o our_o spiritual_a good_a but_o christ_n have_v already_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o so_o full_a measure_n that_o he_o can_v not_o pray_v for_o further_a sanctification_n nor_o for_o a_o better_a heart_n or_o more_o communion_n with_o god_n than_o he_o have_v much_o less_o can_v he_o pray_v for_o such_o thing_n as_o suppose_v a_o sinful_a imperfection_n in_o the_o subject_a so_o he_o do_v not_o or_o can_v not_o pray_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n which_o yet_o he_o teach_v the_o most_o holy_a that_o be_v to_o pray_v continual_o for_o neither_o can_v he_o pray_v for_o justify_v faith_n for_o although_o he_o have_v faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o justify_v faith_n which_o be_v the_o rely_v upon_o christ_n for_o righteousness_n neither_o can_v he_o pray_v for_o the_o conquer_a and_o subdue_a of_o corruption_n see_v his_o pure_a nature_n remain_v altogether_o spotless_a and_o free_a from_o the_o least_o stain_n or_o pollution_n neither_o 3._o be_v prayer_n to_o he_o as_o they_o be_v to_o we_o mean_v to_o quicken_v up_o and_o excite_v the_o heart_n to_o make_v it_o more_o heavenly_a and_o zealous_a prayer_n in_o we_o do_v quicken_v and_o excite_v a_o man_n and_o take_v off_o the_o rust_n upon_o his_o soul_n christ_n be_v always_o in_o contemplation_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v not_o need_v prayer_n to_o make_v his_o soul_n ascend_v high_a to_o god_n hence_o in_o the_o four_o place_n all_z the_o matter_n he_o can_v pray_v for_o in_o reference_n to_o himself_o be_v concern_v his_o body_n and_o the_o further_o glorify_v of_o that_o for_o see_v it_o please_v he_o to_o take_v our_o body_n upon_o he_o in_o all_o the_o natural_a defect_n and_o infirmity_n thereof_o sin_n only_o except_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v not_o always_o be_v in_o such_o a_o passable_a mortal_a way_n but_o rise_v again_o to_o glory_n dominion_n and_o all_o honour_n now_o this_o christ_n pray_v for_o as_o be_v to_o be_v obtain_v by_o prayer_n as_o well_o as_o his_o suffering_n he_o pray_v also_o for_o assistance_n and_o deliverance_n in_o those_o agony_n he_o conflict_v with_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o prayer_n for_o the_o church_n so_o he_o pray_v for_o their_o sanctification_n though_o not_o for_o his_o own_o he_o pray_v peter_n faith_n may_v not_o fail_v he_o pray_v god_n will_v not_o impute_v sin_n to_o some_o of_o those_o who_o do_v crucify_v he_o though_o he_o need_v not_o such_o petition_n yet_o we_o do_v and_o therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n christ_n pray_v in_o which_o we_o can_v imitate_v he_o for_o he_o pray_v as_o he_o be_v to_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n so_o it_o behove_v he_o also_o to_o put_v up_o prayer_n for_o his_o people_n thus_o you_o have_v hear_v how_o christ_n be_v capable_a of_o prayer_n though_o god_n christ_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o comfortable_a advantage_n of_o these_o prayer_n of_o christ_n unto_o we_o and_o 1._o see_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o do_v remember_v our_o good_a in_o his_o prayer_n as_o well_o as_o his_o own_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o pray_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n but_o he_o beg_v and_o pray_v for_o we_o also_o paul_n speak_v of_o it_o as_o his_o great_a affection_n and_o love_n to_o some_o that_o he_o make_v mention_v always_o of_o they_o in_o his_o prayer_n he_o never_o pray_v for_o himself_o but_o for_o they_o also_o and_o thus_o we_o see_v christ_n though_o ready_a to_o be_v offer_v up_o and_o to_o die_v such_o a_o torment_a ignominious_a death_n so_o that_o he_o may_v just_o be_v take_v up_o with_o prayer_n for_o himself_o only_o yet_o he_o do_v the_o same_o time_n think_v of_o his_o church_n and_o all_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o oh_o what_o comfortable_a refreshment_n and_o encouragement_n shall_v this_o be_v to_o the_o deject_a and_o humble_a soul_n that_o christ_n do_v in_o his_o prayer_n remember_v and_o consider_v of_o thou_o as_o well_o as_o his_o own_o glorification_n 2._o this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n be_v always_o hear_v we_o many_o time_n pray_v and_o god_n do_v deny_v we_o because_o as_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v chapt._n 4._o vers_fw-la 4._o we_o ask_v amiss_o or_o we_o ask_v not_o in_o faith_n now_o christ_n have_v every_o thing_n concurrent_a that_o may_v make_v his_o prayer_n successful_a therefore_o john_n 11.42_o christ_n there_o profess_v god_n the_o father_n hear_v he_o always_o in_o
but_o because_o it_o will_v be_v a_o perpetual_a useful_a document_n he_o instance_v in_o those_o that_o be_v to_o come_v yea_o all_o the_o believer_n for_o the_o time_n past_a since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o exclude_v from_o this_o mediatory_a prayer_n while_o they_o need_v it_o no_o more_o then_o from_o his_o death_n for_o christ_n prayer_n as_o his_o death_n profuit_fw-la antequum_fw-la fuit_fw-la be_v it_o profit_v before_o it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v present_a to_o god_n from_o eternity_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n observe_v that_o such_o be_v christ_n care_n and_o love_n to_o he_o that_o they_o be_v remember_v in_o his_o prayer_n and_o death_n even_o before_o they_o have_v a_o be_v when_o thou_o can_v not_o pray_v for_o thyself_o nor_o any_o else_o yea_o from_o eternity_n christ_n mediatory_a love_n and_o purpose_n be_v set_v upon_o thou_o in_o particular_a this_o truth_n be_v full_a of_o consolation_n even_o as_o the_o sea_n be_v of_o water_n to_o those_o that_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n therefore_o to_o open_v this_o first_o consider_v that_o when_o christ_n here_o pray_v for_o all_o believer_n he_o do_v not_o as_o we_o do_v when_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n or_o as_o some_o say_v the_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o heaven_n pray_v viz._n in_o a_o general_a indistinct_a manner_n not_o descend_v to_o every_o particular_a individual_a person_n no_o but_o christ_n in_o this_o prayer_n be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n and_o so_o clothe_v with_o omnisciency_n do_v in_o this_o prayer_n know_v and_o attend_v to_o every_o particular_a believer_n that_o shall_v in_o any_o age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bear_v as_o distinct_o and_o nominal_o as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v as_o when_o he_o tell_v peter_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o christ_n prayer_n for_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o we_o we_o can_v name_v the_o particular_a believer_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o age_n but_o christ_n do_v represent_v in_o this_o prayer_n every_o individual_a man_n and_o have_v as_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o all_o believer_n as_o of_o the_o apostle_n who_o he_o know_v man_n by_o man_n second_o this_o must_v necessary_o be_v so_o because_o though_o the_o execution_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o benefit_n we_o receive_v by_o christ_n prayer_n and_o his_o death_n be_v in_o time_n yet_o the_o decree_n and_o purpose_n be_v from_o all_o eternity_n christ_n do_v not_o at_o this_o time_n of_o prayer_n or_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n begin_v to_o will_n good_a to_o they_o no_o that_o love_n to_o they_o be_v eternal_a and_o of_o old_a insomuch_o that_o we_o can_v say_v there_o ever_o be_v a_o time_n when_o god_n do_v not_o purpose_v these_o glorious_a thing_n for_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o call_v the_o godly_a to_o this_o consideration_n that_o his_o mercy_n and_o love_n to_o they_o be_v of_o old_a even_o before_o they_o ever_o have_v a_o be_v or_o the_o world_n either_o ephes_n 1.4_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o he_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o be_v remarkable_a 2_o tim._n 1.9_o where_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v we_o in_o jesus_n christ_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v actual_o give_v we_o before_o the_o world_n begin_v either_o because_o god_n have_v decree_v to_o do_v so_o or_o else_o because_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v do_v already_o oh_o then_o what_o lively_a consolation_n shall_v this_o breed_v in_o a_o believer_n breast_n god_n gracious_a thought_n of_o mercy_n be_v of_o old_a to_o i_o when_o i_o be_v many_o thousand_o of_o year_n from_o have_v any_o be_v yet_o even_o then_o be_v i_o in_o god_n mind_n and_o love_n no_o wonder_n if_o all_o eternity_n be_v not_o long_a enough_o to_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n for_o this_o eternal_a purpose_n of_o he_o yet_o in_o the_o three_o place_n though_o we_o be_v then_o choose_v in_o christ_n from_o eternity_n yet_o take_v heed_n of_o that_o absurd_a error_n which_o hold_v our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o our_o person_n justify_v from_o eternity_n to_o say_v that_o while_o a_o man_n be_v unconvert_v wallow_v and_o tumble_v in_o his_o lust_n that_o his_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o that_o he_o be_v as_o well_o love_v of_o god_n before_o his_o conversion_n as_o after_o be_v to_o contradict_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o scripture_n for_o though_o we_o be_v elect_v and_o thus_o predestinate_v from_o eternity_n yet_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o be_v not_o bestow_v upon_o we_o till_o in_o time_n and_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o god_n please_v praedestinatio_fw-la est_fw-la amor_fw-la ordinativus_fw-la not_o collativus_fw-la as_o the_o school_n say_v it_o be_v immanent_a in_o god_n not_o transient_a in_o we_o therefore_o you_o see_v our_o saviour_n suppose_v such_o to_o be_v believer_n who_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o death_n he_o do_v not_o promiscuous_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n he_o do_v not_o commend_v to_o god_n love_v every_o man_n or_o woman_n but_o the_o believer_n only_o so_o that_o we_o be_v to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gracious_a effect_n thereof_o otherwise_o we_o may_v as_o well_o say_v we_o be_v glorify_v from_o eternity_n four_o hence_o in_o that_o christ_n do_v thus_o determinate_o pray_v for_o every_o individual_a believer_n it_o be_v a_o plain_a argument_n that_o he_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n for_o how_o can_v those_o thing_n be_v as_o present_v to_o he_o which_o yet_o be_v many_o year_n to_o come_v if_o he_o be_v not_o god_n act._n 15.18_o know_a unto_o god_n be_v all_o his_o work_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o christ_n be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n to_o he_o be_v know_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o every_o believer_n not_o only_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v but_o before_o the_o world_n have_v a_o be_v therefore_o from_o hence_o it_o may_v be_v proper_o gather_v that_o even_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v reveal_v the_o number_n of_o those_o person_n who_o salvation_n he_o be_v to_o procure_v so_o that_o christ_n as_o man_n as_o well_o as_o god_n know_v who_o they_o be_v that_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o it_o be_v true_a omnisciency_n can_v not_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n as_o the_o orthodox_n maintain_v against_o the_o lutheran_n neither_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n reveal_v to_o it_o but_o as_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o know_v not_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o it_o shall_v determinate_o be_v and_o the_o nescience_n of_o this_o be_v not_o any_o sin_n in_o he_o yet_o the_o revelation_n of_o this_o to_o his_o humane_a nature_n viz._n who_o they_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v for_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o necessary_a even_o as_o divine_n say_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n shall_v by_o revelation_n from_o the_o divine_a at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n know_v all_o the_o thought_n and_o secret_n of_o man_n heart_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v the_o great_a judge_n of_o the_o world_n in_o both_o his_o nature_n howsoever_o here_o be_v a_o clear_a argument_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n and_o that_o his_o godhead_n concur_v to_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n therefore_o five_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v impossible_a that_o even_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v shall_v be_v thus_o present_a to_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v to_o we_o for_o our_o knowledge_n be_v measure_v by_o time_n and_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o successive_a order_n in_o the_o object_n we_o know_v but_o also_o in_o the_o act_n of_o know_v but_o the_o measure_n of_o god_n knowledge_n be_v by_o eternity_n wherein_o all_o thing_n do_v exist_v together_o so_o that_o though_o in_o themselves_o one_o object_n be_v after_o another_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n they_o be_v behold_v with_o one_o intuitive_a act_n as_o a_o man_n with_o one_o cast_v of_o a_o eye_n from_o some_o high_a tower_n do_v behold_v many_o passenger_n go_v by_o one_o after_o another_o it_o be_v true_a we_o can_v no_o more_o comprehend_v how_o these_o thing_n be_v all_o at_o once_o open_a and_o naked_a to_o god_n than_o a_o dwarf_n can_v reach_v the_o pyramid_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v what_o by_o reason_n we_o can_v comprehend_v quid_fw-la enim_fw-la magis_fw-la contra_fw-la rationem_fw-la quam_fw-la ratione_fw-la supra_fw-la rationem_fw-la transcendere_fw-la say_v bernard_n it_o be_v enough_o
and_o defend_v the_o truth_n to_o confute_v and_o put_v all_o error_n and_o heresy_n to_o silence_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o qualification_n require_v in_o the_o minister_n that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o convince_v gainsayers_a tit._n 1.9_o you_o see_v the_o apostle_n in_o some_o of_o his_o epistle_n be_v not_o only_o practical_a but_o didactical_a and_o therein_o confute_v those_o error_n that_o molest_v the_o truth_n even_o in_o her_o infancy_n for_o this_o end_n they_o be_v call_v guide_n and_o salt_n yea_o they_o be_v shepherd_n to_o keep_v off_o the_o wolf_n that_o will_v subtle_o devour_v the_o sheep_n we_o be_v to_o watch_v against_o profaneness_n and_o also_o against_o error_n the_o apostle_n use_v that_o phrase_n of_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n both_o in_o matter_n of_o corrupt_a manner_n as_o also_o corrupt_a doctrine_n gal._n 1._o and_o therefore_o will_v have_v the_o church_n of_o god_n purge_v from_o both_o last_o the_o ministry_n be_v appoint_v for_o spiritual_a government_n in_o the_o church_n to_o admonish_v those_o that_o be_v disorderly_a to_o cast_v out_o profane_a and_o obstinate_a sinner_n for_o this_o end_n they_o have_v the_o spiritual_a key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n vouchsafe_v to_o they_o and_o in_o the_o due_a administration_n thereof_o god_n have_v promise_v his_o gracious_a confirmation_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v call_v governor_n ruler_n pastor_n all_o which_o demonstrate_v that_o a_o ministry_n be_v not_o only_o in_o doctrinal_a publication_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o in_o a_o spiritual_a govern_n and_o order_v of_o people_n to_o supernatural_a end_n indeed_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o power_n be_v give_v we_o for_o edification_n not_o destruction_n 1_o cor._n 10.8_o all_o be_v for_o spiritual_a end_n it_o be_v to_o save_v the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v under_o we_o this_o though_o account_v austere_a yet_o be_v profitable_a and_o necessary_a even_o as_o government_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o end_n of_o a_o ministry_n therefore_o four_a when_o we_o say_v god_n have_v appoint_v a_o ministry_n thus_o for_o spiritual_a end_n this_o imply_v god_n will_v bless_v and_o go_v along_o with_o it_o unless_o man_n sin_n do_v hinder_v it_o we_o may_v not_o think_v god_n have_v appoint_v these_o thing_n in_o vain_a or_o for_o a_o mere_a form_n do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o if_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o life_n it_o be_v to_o they_o that_o perish_v 2_o cor._n 2._o who_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o gospel_n minister_v more_o faithful_o than_o christ_n himself_o and_o who_o may_v expect_v great_a success_n in_o his_o ministry_n than_o he_o yet_o we_o hear_v he_o complain_v who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n oh_o then_o let_v that_o people_n that_o congregation_n tremble_v which_o have_v long_o enjoy_v the_o ministry_n yet_o as_o ignorant_a and_o profane_a as_o ever_o oh_o consider_v with_o thyself_o and_o say_v o_o lord_n thy_o arm_n be_v not_o shorten_v thou_o be_v as_o able_a to_o break_v and_o humble_v the_o heart_n of_o sinner_n as_o ever_o therefore_o some_o heavy_a spiritual_a judgement_n be_v upon_o i_o i_o may_v fear_v i_o be_o like_a that_o curse_a figtree_n upon_o which_o christ_n say_v never_o fruit_n grow_v more_o now_o that_o this_o ministry_n be_v to_o be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n while_o god_n have_v a_o church_n here_o appear_v by_o these_o argument_n 1._o the_o end_n of_o the_o office_n be_v perpetual_a therefore_o the_o office_n itself_o be_v perpetual_a the_o end_n be_v to_o convert_v to_o build_v up_o to_o preserve_v from_o error_n to_o admonish_v and_o rebuke_v will_v there_o not_o be_v this_o work_n to_o be_v do_v always_o heaven_n be_v like_a paradise_n that_o need_v no_o rain_n there_o be_v water_n from_o within_o refresh_v it_o but_o the_o church_n while_o militant_a be_v like_o the_o ground_n that_o need_v the_o former_a and_o late_a rain_n 2._o it_o appear_v by_o god_n promise_n to_o they_o mat._n ult_n i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o here_o all_o that_o shall_v believe_v at_o any_o time_n be_v say_v to_o believe_v by_o their_o word_n he_o be_v say_v to_o hold_v the_o seven_o star_n in_o his_o hand_n rev._n 3.1_o 3._o the_o duty_n that_o be_v enjoin_v people_n respective_o to_o they_o be_v perpetual_a as_o to_o hear_v they_o high_o to_o esteem_v of_o they_o for_o their_o work_n sake_n to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o they_o these_o be_v duty_n require_v of_o a_o church_n as_o long_o as_o it_o be_v a_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v employ_v they_o must_v have_v such_o teacher_n and_o officer_n 4._o the_o similitude_n that_o the_o scripture_n use_v about_o they_o and_o the_o church_n enforce_v their_o perpetuity_n they_o be_v light_n the_o world_n will_v always_o need_v the_o sun_n and_o star_n they_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n every_o sacrifice_n must_v have_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o garden_n these_o be_v say_v to_o water_v it_o they_o be_v sheep_n and_o such_o must_v have_v a_o shepherd_n they_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n then_o there_o must_v be_v steward_n to_o dispense_v the_o thing_n of_o life_n 5._o god_n threaten_v it_o as_o the_o sore_a of_o judgement_n to_o remove_v their_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n into_o corner_n to_o remove_v the_o candlestick_n away_o rev._n 2.5_o 6._o there_o be_v direction_n for_o the_o qualification_n of_o such_o who_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v minister_n give_v by_o paul_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n which_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v unblamable_o till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n use_v of_o exhortation_n be_v the_o ministry_n thus_o appoint_v perpetual_o for_o spiritual_a end_n then_o look_v again_o and_o again_o whether_o it_o have_v be_v so_o to_o you_o or_o no_o have_v it_o be_v light_n to_o remove_v thy_o blindness_n have_v it_o be_v salt_n to_o take_v away_o thy_o corruption_n if_o our_o congregation_n be_v still_o so_o many_o golgothaes_n when_o the_o word_n of_o life_n have_v be_v so_o often_o preach_v to_o it_o what_o can_v you_o expect_v that_o god_n will_v make_v they_o aceldamaes_n what_o have_v hinder_v the_o ministry_n from_o its_o proper_a efficacy_n upon_o thou_o but_o thy_o wilful_a rebellion_n and_o wickedness_n it_o be_v to_o work_v faith_n and_o thou_o be_v atheistical_a it_o be_v to_o convert_v thou_o from_o thy_o lust_n and_o thou_o be_v a_o beast_n still_o hear_v o_o heaven_n and_o hearken_v o_o earth_n dreadful_a be_v that_o sin_n and_o judgement_n which_o be_v upon_o thou_o use_v 2._o of_o instruction_n why_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n will_v overthrow_v christ_n ministry_n be_v it_o not_o because_o those_o only_o hinder_v he_o from_o his_o quiet_a possession_n sermon_n cxii_o of_o unity_n among_o god_n people_n the_o nature_n of_o it_o joh_n 17.21_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n art_n in_o i_o etc._n etc._n in_o this_o verse_n be_v lay_v down_o the_o matter_n of_o christ_n petition_n what_o it_o be_v that_o he_o pray_v for_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o that_o be_v unity_n and_o concord_n among_o themselves_o so_o that_o as_o before_o for_o the_o apostle_n he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o apostle_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n so_o here_o he_o pray_v for_o all_o believer_n so_o great_a a_o matter_n be_v it_o to_o have_v all_o the_o godly_a at_o union_n among_o themselves_o now_o although_o this_o union_n comprehend_v in_o it_o grace_v begin_v here_o and_o glory_n consummate_v hereafter_o yet_o it_o be_v again_o and_o again_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o these_o glorious_a privilege_n shall_v be_v comprehend_v in_o the●r_a union_n as_o if_o that_o be_v preserve_v all_o be_v preserve_v and_o without_o that_o there_o can_v not_o be_v any_o godliness_n here_o or_o blessedness_n hereafter_o we_o have_v then_o the_o unity_n and_o agreement_n of_o all_o believer_n make_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o christ_n petition_n for_o they_o and_o in_o that_o take_v notice_n 1._o of_o the_o benefit_n itself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o may_v love_v and_o agree_v with_o one_o another_o but_o be_v one_o as_o if_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v but_o one_o person_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n argue_v none_o ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n eph._n 5.29_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o division_n envy_n and_o difference_n among_o the_o godly_a because_o they_o be_v one_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v they_o shall_v no_o more_o hate_v one_o another_o then_o a_o man_n do_v himself_o 2._o here_o be_v the_o universal_a extent_n of_o this_o unity_n that_o they_o all_o though_o there_o be_v great_a
be_v true_a our_o saviour_n say_v joh._n 14.2_o in_o his_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n place_n there_o be_v room_n enough_o for_o all_o yet_o it_o be_v but_o one_o house_n if_o one_o church_n can_v now_o contain_v we_o how_o shall_v we_o think_v one_o heaven_n will_v it_o follow_v there_o be_v one_o lord_n that_o be_v christ_n who_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o serve_v by_o we_o indeed_o if_o there_o be_v many_o lord_n as_o the_o papist_n set_v up_o many_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o have_v their_o peculiar_a worship_n than_o no_o wonder_n if_o there_o be_v several_a faith_n and_o worship_n also_o but_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v one_o this_o the_o apostle_n urge_v the_o corinthian_n with_o to_o compose_v their_o division_n be_v christ_n divide_v 1_o corin._n 1.13_o unless_o there_o be_v many_o christ_n or_o christ_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o part_n there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v many_o division_n in_o the_o church_n how_o absurd_a will_v it_o be_v to_o say_v i_o have_v one_o christ_n and_o another_o he_o have_v another_o a_o three_o a_o three_o christ_n there_o be_v one_o faith_n one_o system_a of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v believe_v though_o there_o may_v be_v many_o particular_n yet_o they_o make_v up_o one_o entire_a truth_n so_o that_o although_o there_o be_v many_o religion_n and_o many_o faith_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o indeed_o there_o be_v but_o one_o even_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v god_n nuncupative_a god_n but_o to_o we_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n so_o there_o be_v many_o call_v religion_n many_o call_v church_n but_o indeed_o there_o be_v one_o only_o the_o next_o argument_n be_v there_o be_v one_o baptism_n that_o be_v one_o profession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n though_o there_o be_v not_o one_o baptism_n in_o number_n yet_o there_o be_v one_o in_o kind_n christ_n have_v appoint_v but_o one_o way_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o name_n and_o be_v call_v upon_o by_o we_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v also_o make_v a_o argument_n of_o unity_n 1_o cor_fw-la 10.17_o so_o that_o the_o sacrament_n in_o their_o signification_n denote_v unity_n they_o manifest_v one_o body_n one_o spirit_n how_o sad_a then_o be_v it_o that_o so_o many_o ●ents_n and_o division_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n about_o sacrament_n which_o yet_o be_v the_o body_n and_o seal_n of_o unity_n and_o communion_n last_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o because_o there_o be_v one_o god_n only_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v at_o unity_n god_n be_v one_o can_v be_v divide_v in_o himself_o he_o can_v command_v thing_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o do_v contrary_a to_o himself_o therefore_o let_v all_o these_o unity_n make_v we_o serious_a in_o endeavour_v after_o unity_n yea_o we_o may_v add_v that_o in_o hell_n there_o be_v unity_n all_o the_o devil_n agree_v against_o the_o church_n there_o can_v be_v a_o legion_n of_o devil_n in_o one_o man_n shall_v there_o then_o be_v unity_n against_o we_o and_o not_o we_o at_o unity_n among_o ourselves_o godly_a these_o thing_n thus_o urge_v let_v we_o answer_v that_o objection_n see_v god_n have_v promise_v one_o heart_n and_o one_o way_n and_o christ_n have_v also_o thus_o earnest_o pray_v for_o it_o who_o be_v not_o deny_v any_o thing_n by_o the_o father_n how_o be_v it_o there_o be_v so_o many_o breach_n among_o the_o godly_a that_o we_o may_v cry_v out_o contrary_o to_o the_o psalmist_n behold_v how_o sad_a and_o destructive_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o brethren_n to_o be_v at_o discord_n one_o with_o another_o how_o come_v it_o about_o that_o the_o godly_a do_v no_o more_o remember_v of_o what_o spirit_n they_o be_v that_o they_o consider_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n descend_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n that_o babel_n be_v to_o be_v build_v by_o confusion_n of_o tongue_n but_o jerusalem_n without_o any_o noise_n of_o the_o hammer_n and_o therefore_o solomon_n must_v build_v the_o temple_n not_o david_n because_o he_o have_v be_v a_o man_n of_o war_n that_o this_o may_v not_o scandalize_v any_o consider_v these_o thing_n answ_n 1._o though_o unity_n among_o the_o godly_a be_v thus_o necessary_a yet_o that_o infer_v necessary_o division_n and_o opposition_n to_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o wonder_v if_o the_o gospel_n and_o powerful_a dispense_n of_o christ_n way_n make_v fraction_n and_o trouble_n in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o godly_a can_v have_v peace_n with_o themselves_o but_o they_o must_v be_v in_o open_a opposition_n to_o the_o world_n therefore_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o in_o other_o place_n our_o saviour_n inform_v they_o that_o the_o world_n will_v hate_v they_o so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o itself_o of_o a_o turbulent_a divide_v nature_n as_o carnal_a politician_n suggest_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o best_a peace_n and_o unity_n be_v where_o atheism_n do_v abound_v for_o if_o by_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v sad_a distraction_n and_o concussion_n of_o kingdom_n and_o state_n it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o genius_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o from_o the_o opposition_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n heart_n therefore_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o come_v to_o send_v fire_n and_o sword_n in_o the_o earth_n luk._n 12.49_o that_o father_n shall_v be_v against_o son_n and_o mother_n against_o daughter_n that_o a_o man_n enemy_n shall_v be_v those_o of_o his_o own_o house_n this_o be_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o the_o corrupt_a indisposition_n of_o the_o subject_n as_o when_o the_o sun_n do_v offend_v sore_o eye_n or_o the_o medicine_n and_o potion_n take_v disturb_v the_o humour_n and_o make_v a_o man_n the_o sick_a in_o these_o case_n not_o the_o sun_n or_o the_o physician_n be_v to_o be_v blame_v so_o if_o the_o introduction_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o his_o ordinance_n make_v great_a division_n in_o a_o place_n it_o be_v not_o christ_n way_n but_o wicked_a man_n sin_n that_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v this_o than_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v upon_o that_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a can_v have_v no_o unity_n the_o godly_a may_v not_o come_v off_o to_o the_o world_n principle_n and_o the_o world_n will_v not_o come_v off_o to_o the_o godly_a man_n principle_n and_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v a_o perpetual_a enmity_n which_o make_v the_o wise_a man_n say_v that_o the_o righteous_a be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o wicked_a to_o the_o righteous_a pro._n 29.27_o 2._o see_v there_o can_v be_v unity_n between_o sheep_n and_o wolf_n the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o even_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v so_o many_o still_o that_o retain_v their_o beastly_a nature_n and_o though_o they_o have_v the_o title_n of_o christian_n yet_o be_v real_o of_o the_o devil_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o christ_n church_n there_o be_v many_o time_n such_o deadly_a opposition_n wonder_v not_o then_o if_o among_o those_o that_o yet_o pretend_v high_o to_o christ_n there_o be_v sad_a division_n for_o many_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n still_o many_o savour_n not_o experimental_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n there_o shall_v arise_v among_o you_o man_n that_o shall_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n act._n 20.30_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v false_a prophet_n who_o will_v bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n 2_o pet._n 2._o and_o why_o because_o they_o be_v man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n if_o then_o all_o that_o pretend_v to_o christ_n to_o his_o spirit_n have_v indeed_o christ_n spirit_n there_o will_v be_v no_o such_o division_n but_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 2._o they_o go_v from_o we_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o and_o 1_o co._n 11._o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d such_o as_o be_v sound_a may_v be_v esteem_v therefore_o though_o christ_n have_v thus_o pray_v and_o god_n thus_o promise_v yet_o in_o the_o church_n there_o will_v be_v grievous_a rent_n because_o these_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n though_o in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o include_v in_o god_n promise_n or_o christ_n prayer_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o such_o prediction_n that_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a prophet_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothes_n that_o satan_n will_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n by_o which_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect_n will_v be_v seduce_v therefore_o you_o be_v not_o thus_o to_o argue_v when_o you_o see_v rage_a division_n among_o those_o that_o profess_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o holiness_n
the_o platonist_n who_o speak_v of_o three_o principle_n the_o mind_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n yet_o they_o make_v these_o three_o distinct_a essence_n and_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o this_o mystery_n though_o it_o may_v be_v they_o have_v these_o confuse_a notion_n from_o some_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n this_o mystery_n be_v believe_v and_o receive_v therefore_o good_a and_o solid_a argument_n may_v be_v fetch_v thence_o to_o prove_v this_o doctrine_n yet_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n do_v more_o express_o reveal_v it_o so_o that_o in_o those_o who_o do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n yet_o obstinate_o and_o blasphemous_o not_o only_o deny_v but_o deride_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n it_o be_v a_o very_a high_a sin_n and_o blasphemy_n 2._o although_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v unto_o we_o three_o person_n god_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o thereby_o be_v constitute_v many_o go_n there_o be_v heretic_n call_v tritheita_n that_o make_v three_o god_n of_o these_o three_o person_n now_o this_o be_v clear_a that_o though_o the_o scripture_n acknowledge_v three_o person_n yet_o it_o do_v as_o plain_o declare_v there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n therefore_o though_o every_o person_n be_v god_n yet_o there_o be_v not_o three_o god_n therefore_o when_o the_o father_n be_v call_v the_o alone_a god_n this_o be_v not_o to_o exclude_v the_o other_o person_n from_o be_v god_n but_o any_o other_o make_v god_n the_o heathenish_a idol_n be_v not_o god_n nor_o will_v god_n give_v this_o glory_n to_o any_o creature_n 3._o this_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o the_o trinity_n be_v pure_o a_o object_n of_o faith_n reason_n and_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n the_o schoolman_n do_v well_o declare_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o divinity_n may_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n and_o believe_v by_o faith_n as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n this_o may_v be_v know_v both_o way_n so_o that_o though_o faith_n and_o science_n can_v have_v the_o same_o formal_a motive_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v conversant_a about_o the_o same_o object_n we_o know_v there_o be_v a_o god_n by_o demonstration_n of_o reason_n we_o believe_v by_o authority_n and_o testimony_n from_o scripture_n but_o now_o this_o truth_n about_o the_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v only_o to_o be_v believe_v it_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n indeed_o when_o once_o this_o revelation_n be_v make_v than_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o find_v out_o such_o reason_n and_o consequence_n ground_v on_o scripture_n that_o may_v serve_v to_o answer_v all_o the_o objection_n of_o any_o adversary_n for_o nothing_o reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v contrary_a to_o reason_n though_o it_o may_v be_v above_o it_o therefore_o when_o scripture_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n than_o reason_n may_v make_v a_o superstruction_n yet_o we_o must_v take_v this_o caution_n although_o reason_n be_v allow_v to_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o faith_n we_o must_v look_v she_o grow_v not_o imperious_a as_o hagar_n to_o sarah_n for_o than_o we_o be_v to_o cast_v she_o out_o of_o door_n than_o the_o rule_n be_v mulier_fw-la ista_fw-la ratio_fw-la taceat_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la this_o doctrine_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o humble_a believe_v and_o not_o to_o be_v search_v into_o by_o curious_a or_o furious_a rashness_n and_o certain_o the_o devil_n be_v very_o ready_a to_o tempt_v in_o this_o point_n sometime_o he_o prevail_v to_o seduce_v in_o this_o point_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o arian_n of_o old_a and_o socinian_o of_o late_a sometime_o he_o can_v seduce_v yet_o he_o do_v shake_v and_o disturb_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o godly_a exceed_o by_o suggestion_n so_o that_o their_o temptation_n about_o dogmatical_a faith_n sometime_o be_v as_o grievous_a as_o about_o justify_v faith_n but_o now_o although_o we_o have_v a_o two_o fold_v light_n the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o latter_a aught_o to_o correct_v &_o direct_v the_o former_a yet_o such_o be_v our_o corruption_n that_o we_o make_v the_o light_n of_o reason_n to_o correct_v the_o light_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o we_o shall_v make_v the_o sun_n to_o borrow_v its_o light_n from_o the_o star_n but_o these_o two_o light_n be_v as_o superior_a and_o inferior_a so_o that_o although_o nothing_o can_v be_v false_a by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n which_o be_v true_a by_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n yet_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n comprehend_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n can_v as_o nothing_o can_v be_v false_a to_o sense_n and_o true_a to_o reason_n yet_o reason_n can_v comprehend_v many_o thing_n which_o sense_n can_v therefore_o when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n which_o be_v reason_n be_v very_o dim_a and_o stagger_a let_v the_o light_n of_o faith_n like_o that_o of_o the_o sun_n full_o enlighten_v and_o confirm_v thou_o godhead_n in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o peculiar_a characteristical_a property_n for_o though_o the_o father_n and_o son_n have_v the_o same_o common_a nature_n and_o essence_n yet_o a_o different_a subsistence_n so_o that_o though_o they_o be_v one_o god_n yet_o not_o one_o person_n it_o be_v a_o know_a rule_n in_o christ_n there_o be_v aliud_fw-la and_o aliud_fw-la another_o nature_n and_o another_o nature_n but_o not_o alius_fw-la &_o alius_fw-la another_o person_n and_o another_o person_n but_o in_o the_o trinity_n there_o be_v not_o aliud_fw-la &_o aliud_fw-la but_o alius_fw-la &_o alius_fw-la as_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n trinity_n person_n etc._n etc._n though_o not_o scripture_n word_n yet_o the_o sense_n be_v there_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o distinction_n and_o explication_n sake_n to_o use_v they_o though_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o person_n be_v a_o scripture_n word_n and_o there_o be_v the_o conjugate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o whence_o we_o may_v make_v the_o abstract_n as_o paul_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d concern_v therefore_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o father_n there_o be_v these_o thing_n 1._o in_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n and_o christ_n the_o son_n it_o be_v imply_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o the_o son_n the_o second_o only_o when_o he_o be_v call_v the_o first_o you_o must_v not_o understand_v it_o in_o dignity_n and_o perfection_n for_o the_o father_n have_v no_o absolute_a perfection_n which_o the_o son_n have_v not_o for_o see_v both_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n therefore_o one_o can_v have_v great_a perfection_n than_o another_o the_o father_n be_v not_o more_o wise_a more_o powerful_a more_o holy_a than_o the_o son_n nor_o be_v he_o the_o first_o person_n in_o respect_n of_o duration_n as_o if_o the_o father_n be_v god_n before_o the_o son_n for_o see_v he_o be_v from_o all_o eternity_n father_n therefore_o he_o have_v also_o this_o son_n from_o eternity_n as_o the_o sun_n be_v never_o without_o its_o beam_n indeed_o the_o orthodox_n do_v well_o deride_v and_o just_o the_o socinian_o that_o whereas_o they_o confess_v the_o father_n from_o all_o eternity_n and_o the_o son_n a_o make_v or_o constitute_v god_n in_o time_n that_o they_o thereby_o introduce_v a_o old_a god_n and_o a_o young_a god_n not_o indeed_o as_o these_o word_n denote_v infirmity_n but_o as_o old_a be_v take_v for_o ancient_a and_o young_a for_o that_o which_o be_v new_a and_o certain_o if_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n than_o he_o become_v to_o be_v so_o in_o time_n but_o he_o be_v call_v the_o first_o person_n in_o order_n for_o so_o the_o scripture_n represent_v a_o order_n to_o our_o conception_n in_o this_o glorious_a mystery_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n whereby_o we_o be_v baptize_v first_o into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o then_o of_o the_o son_n the_o father_n than_o be_v the_o first_o person_n and_o the_o son_n the_o second_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o dignity_n or_o duration_n but_o order_n 2._o when_o god_n the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o christ_n his_o son_n it_o be_v not_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n as_o he_o be_v call_v father_n sometime_o but_o in_o a_o proper_a peculiar_a and_o incommunicable_a sense_n for_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o indeed_o we_o see_v plain_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o believer_n in_o this_o text_n that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o in_o
yet_o because_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o our_o christian_a comfort_n be_v in_o this_o union_n unity_n and_o unity_n be_v our_o whole_a spiritual_a treasury_n let_v we_o follow_v the_o scripture_n light_n in_o explication_n of_o it_o and_o first_o it_o be_v good_a to_o consider_v what_o synonimous_a or_o equivolent_a expression_n the_o scripture_n have_v to_o represent_v this_o unity_n and_o we_o read_v of_o a_o emphatical_a one_o 1_o cor._n 6.17_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o metaphor_n be_v from_o glue_n that_o do_v so_o close_o and_o inseparable_o join_v thing_n together_o he_o be_v make_v one_o spirit_n be_v not_o this_o a_o wonderful_a expression_n of_o that_o intimate_a union_n the_o believer_n have_v with_o god_n he_o be_v make_v one_o spirit_n with_o he_o not_o essential_o as_o if_o he_o be_v make_v infinite_a omniscient_a etc._n etc._n but_o as_o it_o be_v moral_o as_o they_o say_v amicus_fw-la est_fw-la alter_fw-la ego_fw-la another_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o joh._n 1.2_o true_o our_o fellowship_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n thus_o 2_o pet._n 2.4_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o often_o we_o read_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o communion_n indeed_o be_v a_o consequent_a of_o our_o union_n our_o union_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o communion_n although_o the_o word_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v communion_n but_o communication_n sometime_o howsoever_o this_o signify_v the_o unspeakable_a privilege_n the_o godly_a have_v by_o their_o union_n that_o now_o all_o thing_n do_v become_v they_o which_o christ_n have_v our_o mala_fw-la and_o his_fw-la bona_fw-la be_v communia_fw-la we_o can_v fall_v and_o perish_v unless_o christ_n also_o be_v destroy_v with_o we_o a_o last_o word_n i_o shall_v instance_n in_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rom._n 6.5_o and_o hereby_o be_v intimate_v our_o co-planting_a into_o he_o and_o this_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o olive-tree_n and_o the_o vine_n do_v admirable_o represent_v and_o certain_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o union_n scarce_o but_o the_o scripture_n express_v our_o unity_n with_o christ_n by_o it_o as_o that_o of_o the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n of_o a_o foundation_n and_o building_n of_o a_o vine_n and_o its_o branch_n of_o a_o husband_n and_o wife_n to_o show_v hereby_o the_o excellency_n and_o fullness_n of_o it_o every_o one_o of_o those_o union_n have_v something_o that_o another_o have_v not_o as_o david_n do_v attribute_v several_a title_n to_o god_n of_o a_o shield_n rock_n tower_n etc._n etc._n to_o show_v that_o god_n be_v all_o thing_n to_o he_o thus_o be_v christ_n all_o union_n to_o the_o godly_a as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v 2._o there_o must_v be_v a_o unition_n as_o cameron_n well_o observe_v union_n before_o there_o can_v be_v a_o union_n a_o communication_n before_o a_o communion_n unition_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v efficient_o as_o the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n join_v the_o believer_n to_o christ_n and_o union_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v formal_o the_o join_v itself_o of_o the_o person_n together_o now_o there_o be_v something_o on_o god_n part_v unite_n and_o something_o on_o we_o on_o god_n part_n that_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n eph._n 2.8_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n have_v through_o christ_n access_n unto_o the_o father_n through_o one_o spirit_n so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o sanctify_v the_o spirit_n that_o work_v mighty_o in_o believer_n the_o spirit_n that_o seal_v thus_o it_o be_v also_o the_o spirit_n that_o unite_v to_o christ_n for_o of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v alien_n from_o god_n we_o all_o lie_v dissipate_v in_o ruin_n but_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o quicken_v we_o and_o engraft_v we_o into_o christ_n as_o the_o spirit_n on_o god_n part_n so_o faith_n on_o our_o part_n eph_n 3.15_o thus_o christ_n dwell_v by_o faith_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o the_o olive-tree_n therefore_o that_o be_v call_v eat_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n whereby_o we_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n our_o head_n we_o then_o may_v easy_o conclude_v all_o man_n live_v in_o their_o natural_a condition_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v nothing_o of_o this_o unity_n they_o must_v needs_o wither_v and_o perish_v in_o their_o sin_n 3._o we_o may_v conceive_v of_o a_o natural_a union_n with_o christ_n and_o a_o supernatural_a supernatural_a a_o natural_a union_n all_o man_n have_v in_o that_o he_o take_v man_n nature_n and_o not_o angel_n upon_o he_o so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n all_o man_n though_o never_o so_o wicked_a yet_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o thousand_o be_v damn_v though_o christ_n take_v man_n nature_n upon_o he_o the_o other_o union_n be_v supernatural_a for_o as_o christ_n though_o man_n yet_o be_v conceive_v in_o a_o supernatural_a way_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o all_o those_o who_o be_v mystical_o unite_v to_o christ_n be_v in_o a_o supernatural_a way_n change_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o thereby_o join_v to_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o of_o god_n the_o father_n that_o do_v thus_o unite_v we_o to_o he_o we_o can_v then_o take_v any_o comfort_n simple_o in_o this_o that_o christ_n be_v make_v man_n unless_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a union_n with_o he_o as_o well_o as_o a_o natural_a therefore_o the_o apostle_n excellent_o to_o this_o purpose_n urge_v christ_n incarnation_n heb._n 2.11_o 14._o do_v not_o press_v absolute_o his_o be_v make_v man_n but_o so_o as_o thereby_o to_o help_v not_o all_o man_n but_o such_o as_o be_v his_o brethren_n all_o man_n be_v not_o christ_n brethren_n but_o such_o as_o by_o faith_n be_v make_v one_o with_o he_o both_o he_o that_o sanctify_v and_o they_o who_o be_v sanctify_v be_v all_o of_o one_o that_o be_v of_o one_o adam_n of_o one_o root_n as_o it_o be_v general_o expound_v but_o though_o other_o man_n be_v of_o that_o one_o root_n as_o well_o as_o such_o as_o be_v sanctify_v yet_o the_o apostle_n limit_n it_o to_o such_o only_a that_o be_v sanctify_v and_o from_o thence_o draw_v that_o comfortable_a inference_n christ_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v they_o brethren_n and_o v_o 14._o because_o the_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o also_o himself_o take_v part_n of_o the_o same_o so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o these_o text_n no_o man_n can_v simple_o take_v comfort_n in_o this_o that_o christ_n become_v a_o man_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o humane_a nature_n with_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v only_o to_o the_o child_n only_o to_o such_o as_o be_v sanctify_v that_o his_o incarnation_n be_v advantageous_a spiritual_a hence_o 4._o this_o union_n be_v whole_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o we_o the_o body_n christ_n the_o husband_n and_o we_o the_o wife_n but_o all_o this_o be_v after_o a_o spiritual_a and_o mysterious_a manner_n the_o ligament_n be_v spiritual_a insomuch_o that_o this_o be_v better_a feel_v experimental_o then_o palpable_o express_v therefore_o to_o carnal_a and_o natural_a man_n it_o be_v whole_o a_o paradox_n they_o can_v imagine_v what_o it_o be_v even_o as_o spiritual_a and_o immaterial_a object_n can_v be_v discern_v by_o the_o eye_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n so_o neither_o can_v this_o spiritual_a union_n be_v natural_o perceive_v if_o we_o shall_v preach_v all_o our_o life_n time_n upon_o it_o a_o natural_a man_n will_v never_o understand_v one_o iota_fw-la or_o tittle_n about_o it_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o union_n between_o man_n and_o wife_n eph._n 5.32_o thereby_o represent_v the_o union_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n add_v this_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n but_o i_o speak_v concern_v christ_n and_o his_o church_n oh_o pray_v therefore_o that_o thou_o may_v experimental_o feel_v this_o union_n with_o christ_n that_o something_o within_o may_v close_v with_o this_o and_o thou_o may_v be_v able_a to_o say_v o_o lord_n though_o i_o read_v it_o in_o no_o book_n hear_v it_o in_o no_o sermon_n yet_o my_o own_o heart_n can_v discern_v it_o real_a 5._o though_o this_o union_n be_v spiritual_a yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v real_a it_o be_v not_o imaginary_a and_o a_o mere_a fancy_n but_o as_o christ_n be_v a_o real_a christ_n god_n a_o real_a god_n faith_n a_o real_a grace_n so_o real_a be_v our_o union_n with_o these_o and_o therefore_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o union_n be_v altogether_o real_a such_o as_o
in_o the_o vine_n and_o vers_fw-la 5_o 6._o he_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o our_o be_v in_o christ_n but_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o and_o again_o he_o that_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o by_o which_o expression_n it_o appear_v that_o these_o be_v two_o distinct_a thing_n our_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o and_o indeed_o one_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o other_o the_o preserver_n and_o continuer_n of_o the_o other_o for_o because_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o give_v daily_a influence_n and_o supply_n therefore_o we_o be_v keep_v in_o he_o to_o open_v this_o believer_n to_o open_v this_o consider_v first_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o only_o say_v christ_n be_v in_o a_o believer_n but_o he_o live_v in_o he_o as_o paul_n gal._n 2.20_o and_o this_o denote_v that_o christ_n presence_n in_o we_o be_v operative_a and_o active_a for_o as_o life_n in_o a_o man_n quoad_fw-la actum_fw-la primum_fw-la do_v always_o more_o or_o less_o sensible_o put_v forth_o life_n quoad_fw-la actum_fw-la secundum_fw-la thus_o it_o be_v with_o christ_n he_o be_v in_o the_o soul_n not_o as_o he_o be_v once_o in_o the_o ship_n asleep_z and_o so_o cease_v from_o any_o action_n but_o he_o live_v in_o we_o for_o even_o as_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o creature_n do_v still_o work_v by_o conservation_n as_o at_o first_o by_o creation_n so_o that_o if_o he_o do_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n withdraw_v his_o influence_n this_o whole_a fabric_n will_v fall_v into_o nothing_o thus_o it_o be_v also_o in_o respect_n of_o grace_n as_o christ_n do_v at_o first_o put_v supernatural_a life_n into_o we_o so_o do_v he_o not_o continual_o act_v and_o enliven_v we_o we_o shall_v quick_o become_v dead_a in_o our_o sin_n but_o christ_n live_v in_o we_o and_o if_o you_o say_v how_o then_o come_v it_o about_o that_o so_o many_o time_n christ_n seem_v to_o be_v go_v from_o the_o soul_n that_o he_o have_v leave_v his_o habitation_n that_o no_o life_n or_o work_n of_o christ_n appear_v that_o may_v be_v answer_v afterward_o only_o for_o the_o present_n know_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n mal._n 4.2_o which_o arise_v with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n and_o he_o be_v the_o tree_n of_o life_n yea_o he_o call_v himself_o in_o the_o abstract_n i_o be_o the_o life_n john_n 11.25_o and_o therefore_o if_o thy_o heart_n be_v dead_a dull_a formal_a the_o defect_n be_v not_o from_o christ_n live_v but_o by_o sinful_a obstruction_n by_o sin_n in_o thou_o even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n country_n he_o can_v do_v no_o miracle_n there_o because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n mark_v 6.6_o but_o as_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o live_v in_o believer_n so_o to_o abide_v in_o they_o and_o that_o denote_v more_o than_o live_v for_o christ_n be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v sure_a in_o his_o blood_n may_v have_v live_v in_o the_o godly_a but_o his_o life_n in_o we_o may_v have_v pass_v away_o as_o our_o life_n and_o like_o a_o shadow_n as_o god_n for_o a_o long_a while_n be_v with_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n in_o a_o tabernacle_n that_o move_v up_o and_o down_o before_o he_o be_v in_o a_o temple_n fix_v thus_o god_n be_v gracious_o present_a in_o adam_n in_o the_o apostate_n angel_n but_o this_o presence_n be_v ambulatory_a only_o now_o through_o christ_n he_o have_v fix_v his_o abode_n with_o we_o he_o come_v and_o so_o dwell_v with_o we_o that_o he_o will_v never_o go_v from_o we_o when_o therefore_o christ_n have_v once_o begin_v to_o live_v in_o thou_o he_o will_v always_o abide_v so_o christ_n be_v always_o in_o thy_o soul_n though_o thou_o may_v not_o perceive_v it_o yea_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o only_o say_v christ_n abide_v in_o we_o but_o that_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o ephes_n 3.17_o now_o dwell_v do_v denote_v that_o intimatenesse_n and_o familiarity_n as_o also_o that_o care_n and_o cost_n christ_n be_v willing_a to_o bestow_v on_o our_o soul_n no_o man_n that_o be_v able_a will_v suffer_v his_o house_n he_o live_v in_o to_o run_v to_o decay_v and_o to_o fall_v into_o utter_a ruin_n and_o indeed_o the_o house_n can_v take_v care_n for_o itself_o but_o the_o master_n do_v thus_o it_o be_v here_o christ_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o own_o dwelling-place_n to_o fall_v into_o decay_n he_o will_v see_v it_o be_v repair_v it_o will_v be_v christ_n loss_n as_o well_o as_o the_o believer_n second_o people_n because_o there_o be_v erroneous_a and_o dangerous_a conceit_n about_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o people_n let_v we_o first_o remove_v the_o false_a way_n and_o then_o assert_v the_o true_a as_o 1._o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o his_o people_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o there_o be_v a_o confusion_n of_o their_o being_n or_o as_o if_o they_o be_v make_v one_o real_a and_o physical_a person_n with_o he_o for_o thus_o some_o have_v dangerous_o affirm_v that_o we_o be_v chri_v with_o christ_n and_o make_v one_o real_a person_n with_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a christ_n and_o his_o people_n make_v up_o one_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a person_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o two_o no_o more_o than_o the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a error_n as_o also_o high_a nonsense_n to_o affirm_v such_o a_o be_v of_o christ_n in_o we_o as_o that_o we_o be_v turn_v into_o christ_n there_o be_v among_o the_o popish_a devout_a writer_n those_o that_o be_v call_v m●sti●i_fw-la theologi_fw-la as_o if_o they_o only_o do_v enter_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holies_n and_o all_o other_o writer_n be_v but_o mere_a literarist_n and_o these_o speak_v much_o of_o such_o rapture_n and_o elevation_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o in_o these_o pang_n it_o do_v lose_v its_o own_o be_v and_o be_v transessentiate_v into_o god_n many_o sublime_a and_o unintelligible_a expression_n they_o have_v such_o as_o the_o paracelsian_n among_o physician_n now_o what_o these_o say_v about_o god_n many_o have_v a_o imitate_v language_n of_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o live_v and_o dwell_v in_o we_o you_o must_v not_o conceive_v as_o if_o we_o be_v turn_v into_o christ_n or_o christ_n in_o we_o we_o must_v not_o fancy_v such_o a_o imagination_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v about_o transubstantiation_n think_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n hence_o in_o the_o second_o place_n it_o be_v horrible_a blasphemy_n which_o some_o will_v infer_v from_o god_n or_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o that_o they_o do_v not_o sin_n at_o all_o they_o work_v not_o but_o god_n or_o christ_n in_o they_o calvin_n of_o old_a write_v against_o such_o libertine_n affirm_v that_o by_o their_o horrid_a doctrine_n they_o make_v god_n worse_o than_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o late_a there_o have_v be_v some_o who_o have_v bold_o vomit_v this_o poison_n of_o the_o red_a dragon_n let_v they_o commit_v never_o such_o abominable_a and_o notorious_a crime_n they_o do_v not_o sin_n why_o because_o christ_n be_v in_o they_o but_o though_o christ_n live_v in_o the_o godly_a in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o lose_v their_o personal_a be_v or_o operation_n it_o be_v not_o christ_n that_o repent_v or_o believe_v in_o they_o but_o they_o themselves_o though_o he_o efficient_o help_v to_o these_o duty_n much_o less_o be_v it_o christ_n that_o sin_v or_o commit_v iniquity_n in_o they_o three_o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o we_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o he_o be_v bodily_a live_n in_o we_o as_o if_o his_o body_n be_v receive_v into_o our_o body_n no_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o exalt_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o glory_n and_o howsoever_o the_o lutheran_n do_v hot_o dispute_v for_o the_o ubiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n yet_o that_o be_v to_o kick_v against_o the_o prick_n the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a that_o his_o body_n be_v so_o in_o heaven_n that_o it_o be_v not_o corporeal_o any_o where_o else_o it_o be_v true_a all_o believer_n do_v partake_v of_o whole_a christ_n of_o his_o person_n and_o therefore_o of_o his_o body_n as_o well_o as_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o body_n be_v not_o after_o a_o bodily_a manner_n he_o do_v not_o live_v and_o dwell_v in_o we_o bodily_a it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o virgin_n mari●s_n womb_n christ_n be_v there_o once_o bodily_a but_o not_o so_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o other_o woman_n neither_o have_v she_o be_v happy_a mere_o through_o that_o have_v not_o christ_n even_o then_o live_v spiritual_o in_o her_o heart_n four_o neither_o
heb._n 1.3_o for_o as_o the_o son_n of_o a_o natural_a father_n do_v many_o time_n represent_v he_o in_o lineament_n colour_n and_o all_o deportment_n thus_o christ_n also_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v demonstrate_v the_o wisdom_n power_n and_o holiness_n of_o his_o father_n therefore_o joh._n 10._o for_o the_o father_n and_o son_n to_o be_v one_o be_v make_v the_o same_o with_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n be_v so_o in_o the_o son_n that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o nature_n essence_n and_o attribute_n with_o he_o and_o thus_o if_o the_o son_n be_v in_o we_o the_o father_n also_o must_v be_v because_o they_o be_v one_o second_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n in_o respect_n of_o operation_n and_o work_n for_o this_o end_n it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o mediatorship_n he_o refer_v all_o to_o the_o father_n as_o he_o that_o send_v he_o the_o doctrine_n he_o preach_v he_o say_v be_v not_o he_o but_o his_o father_n joh._n 14.10_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o work_v the_o father_n and_o i_o work_v hitherto_o so_o that_o all_o that_o christ_n do_v in_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n in_o work_v of_o miracle_n all_o these_o do_v declare_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o he_o and_o this_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n for_o hereby_o we_o may_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o a_o believer_n design_v both_o by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n one_o be_v not_o more_o willing_a than_o another_o to_o procure_v this_o redemption_n three_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o infinite_a love_n as_o amans_fw-la be_v in_o amato_fw-la call_v therefore_o the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n therefore_o this_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o text_n as_o part_v of_o this_o unity_n that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v thou_o have_v love_v i_o though_o this_o love_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o terminate_v on_o he_o only_o but_o on_o all_o believer_n in_o he_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n call_v he_o his_o father_n and_o their_o father_n and_o so_o some_o understand_v that_o transitive_o in_o who_o i_o be_o well-pleased_n viz._n with_o the_o godly_a be_v reconcile_v through_o his_o blood_n to_o they_o the_o father_n than_o be_v in_o the_o son_n by_o way_n of_o love_n and_o through_o he_o in_o all_o believer_n by_o way_n of_o the_o same_o love_n four_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n by_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n this_o the_o scripture_n give_v a_o notable_a description_n of_o col._n 2.9_o for_o in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a this_o place_n be_v worthy_a of_o a_o full_a consideration_n for_o it_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n as_o the_o second_o person_n but_o of_o the_o father_n as_o god_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o the_o end_n why_o the_o apostle_n bring_v this_o be_v to_o take_v off_o all_o man_n from_o run_v either_o to_o philosophy_n humane_a tradition_n or_o moysaicall_a rite_n because_o the_o godhead_n be_v in_o christ_n bodily_a the_o apostle_n argument_n be_v where_o there_o be_v a_o complete_a perfection_n and_o fullness_n there_o need_v no_o additament_n but_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o complete_a fullness_n to_o all_o evangelical_n purpose_n and_o necessary_a matter_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o this_o be_v prove_v because_o in_o christ_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a in_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o his_o humane_a nature_n all_o the_o godhead_n that_o be_v all_o the_o whole_a nature_n and_o attribute_n of_o god_n wisdom_n righteousness_n holiness_n etc._n etc._n dwell_v that_o be_v abide_v continue_v bodily_a that_o be_v personal_o in_o opposition_n first_o to_o the_o legal_a expression_n of_o god_n presence_n as_o when_o god_n speak_v from_o between_o the_o cherubim_n as_o also_o in_o opposition_n to_o that_o efficacious_a presence_n and_o assistance_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o such_o extraordinary_a holy_a man_n that_o he_o raise_v up_o now_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n transcendent_o to_o these_o for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o humane_a nature_n so_o as_o to_o be_v make_v one_o person_n with_o it_o filius_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la assumpsit_fw-la hominem_fw-la personam_fw-la sed_fw-la assumpsit_fw-la hominem_fw-la in_o personam_fw-la and_o thus_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n otherwise_o then_o in_o other_o creature_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v never_o able_a to_o comprehend_v sufficient_o this_o mystery_n last_o which_o be_v the_o most_o proper_a sense_n of_o this_o text_n the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n as_o a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n for_o this_o be_v chief_o intend_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o bond_n of_o that_o union_n with_o the_o father_n and_o believer_n as_o also_o with_o believer_n among_o themselves_o so_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o here_o bare_o consider_v as_o god_n nor_o bare_o as_o man_n but_o as_o god-man_n as_o mediator_n thus_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 5.19_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a the_o world_n unto_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o trespass_n unto_o they_o so_o that_o without_o christ_n we_o be_v all_o at_o a_o distance_n yea_o enmity_n with_o god_n he_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n and_o we_o nothing_o but_o stubble_n even_o as_o you_o see_v the_o distance_n and_o contrariety_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o god_n be_v they_o one_o in_o christ_n can_v they_o call_v god_n father_n and_o all_o be_v because_o they_o have_v not_o a_o mediator_n here_o than_o be_v the_o springhead_n of_o all_o consolation_n that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n as_o a_o mediator_n reconcile_a god_n and_o man_n together_o and_o certain_o if_o the_o believer_n do_v more_o improve_v this_o truth_n that_o he_o be_v make_v one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n it_o will_v raise_v up_o his_o soul_n he_o will_v condemn_v himself_o for_o all_o those_o low_a narrow_a and_o deject_a thought_n he_o be_v assault_v with_o for_o how_o can_v sin_v hurt_v he_o that_o be_v one_o with_o christ_n how_o can_v the_o devil_n destroy_v he_o that_o be_v one_o with_o god_n certain_o these_o must_v destroy_v christ_n and_o god_n also_o indeed_o the_o devil_n overcome_v adam_n and_o the_o angel_n but_o they_o be_v not_o one_o with_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o unite_v to_o he_o in_o a_o inviolable_a covenant_n and_o therefore_o they_o quick_o spend_v all_o and_o become_v bankrupt_n this_o instance_n indeed_o show_v what_o we_o be_v in_o ourselves_o and_o that_o it_o be_v christ_n only_a who_o bear_v we_o up_o but_o withal_o it_o command_v the_o soul_n to_o glory_n in_o christ_n to_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n to_o triumph_v in_o christ_n for_o in_o he_o only_o we_o have_v pardon_n and_o boldness_n at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n they_o these_o glorious_a thing_n be_v clear_a scripture-truth_n all_o the_o doubt_n be_v how_o shall_v a_o christian_a persuade_v himself_o that_o the_o son_n and_o the_o father_n abide_v in_o he_o when_o he_o be_v sensible_a of_o such_o corruption_n and_o sin_n also_o in_o he_o for_o who_o will_v not_o think_v that_o when_o these_o high_a thing_n be_v speak_v that_o christ_n live_v and_o dwell_v in_o a_o man_n that_o the_o father_n and_o son_n do_v make_v their_o abode_n in_o he_o but_o that_o such_o a_o soul_n must_v be_v perfect_v and_o make_v pure_a without_o sin_n who_o will_v not_o think_v that_o only_o a_o complete_a and_o perfect_a man_n can_v say_v with_o paul_n i_o no_o long_o but_o christ_n in_o i_o oh_o say_v the_o godly_a soul_n i_o may_v and_o must_v say_v the_o contrary_a not_o christ_n but_o sin_n but_o the_o world_n live_v in_o i_o and_o as_o it_o be_v thus_o for_o grace_n so_o also_o for_o consolation_n if_o christ_n be_v in_o a_o man_n and_o he_o dwell_v there_o how_o can_v there_o be_v such_o black_a unbelieve_a thought_n where_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v there_o must_v be_v a_o heaven_n not_o a_o hell_n can_v the_o sun_n arise_v in_o its_o full_a glory_n and_o power_n yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v a_o black_a night_n so_o how_o can_v christ_n and_o the_o father_n be_v in_o a_o believer_n and_o yet_o they_o so_o subject_a to_o temptation_n and_o doubt_n whether_o he_o be_v in_o they_o or_o no_o answ_n now_o for_o the_o first_o how_o the_o father_n and_o son_n can_v be_v in_o a_o believer_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v such_o remainder_n of_o vigorous_a corruption_n in_o he_o to_o this_o it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o if_o it_o be_v due_o consider_v how_o the_o father_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o it_o must_v present_o be_v conceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o presence_n of_o sin_n necessary_o suppose_v in_o such_o for_o as_o you_o hear_v god_n in_o we_o
after_o that_o heavenly_a unity_n to_o have_v it_o with_o the_o church_n here_o in_o grace_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o the_o church_n hereafter_o in_o glory_n and_o certain_o if_o this_o be_v not_o accomplish_v in_o heaven_n than_o there_o will_v not_o be_v all_o tear_n wipe_v away_o nor_o will_v the_o reproach_n of_o jerusalem_n cease_v unity_n thus_o you_o have_v hear_v what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v this_o unity_n of_o believer_n consummate_v and_o perfect_a now_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v find_v to_o be_v no_o humane_a strength_n or_o outward_a wisdom_n and_o policy_n but_o the_o lively_a communication_n of_o grace_n enable_v thereunto_o by_o christ_n himself_o though_o the_o papist_n plead_v that_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n yet_o experience_n show_v the_o falseness_n of_o it_o the_o division_n and_o breach_n of_o the_o godly_a like_o those_o of_o reuben_n have_v make_v sad_a work_n of_o heart_n and_o many_o have_v come_v run_v in_o with_o their_o water_n to_o quench_v this_o fire_n several_a antidote_n have_v be_v prescribe_v against_o this_o corruption_n but_o yet_o when_o all_o be_v do_v it_o be_v the_o only_a power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o head_n of_o his_o church_n that_o work_v this_o sweet_a harmony_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o many_o rule_n and_o pacificall_a mean_n be_v commend_v by_o wise_a and_o godly_a man_n to_o make_v a_o unity_n but_o these_o work_n only_o moral_o and_o swasory_o that_o which_o do_v as_o it_o be_v physical_o and_o real_o work_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n christ_n himself_o as_o the_o fountain_n of_o this_o unity_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o unity_n among_o believer_n be_v not_o only_o external_a but_o internal_a and_o spiritual_a now_o no_o man_n can_v work_v this_o unity_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a any_o more_o than_o he_o can_v work_v purity_n and_o holiness_n therefore_o we_o see_v in_o the_o text_n that_o because_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o and_o the_o father_n in_o christ_n therefore_o be_v the_o godly_a perfect_v in_o one_o so_o that_o it_o require_v a_o divine_a supernatural_a power_n to_o make_v the_o godly_a at_o heavenly_a accord_n even_o as_o it_o do_v to_o make_v they_o godly_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o this_o prayer_n christ_n commend_v it_o to_o god_n to_o work_v it_o as_o be_v beyond_o all_o humane_a power_n to_o effect_v it_o now_o christ_n be_v in_o a_o believer_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o unity_n first_o he_o be_v thereby_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o unity_n itself_o for_o we_o tell_v you_o this_o unity_n though_o external_a yet_o be_v chief_o spiritual_a and_o internal_a viz._n the_o harmonious_a knit_n and_o join_v of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n together_o in_o he_o their_o head_n now_o this_o be_v whole_o spiritual_a none_o can_v effect_v it_o but_o god_n alone_o for_o natural_o we_o be_v disjoined_n from_o god_n and_o full_a of_o contrariety_n to_o he_o therefore_o to_o be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o implant_v into_o he_o can_v be_v by_o any_o other_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o those_o dry_a bone_n in_o ezekiel_n can_v not_o of_o themselves_o gather_v together_o nor_o can_v a_o cyen_fw-mi graft_v itself_o into_o a_o stock_n thus_o it_o be_v here_o till_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n join_v we_o to_o christ_n we_o be_v enemy_n and_o adversary_n unto_o he_o that_o power_n therefore_o which_o give_v grace_n that_o only_o unite_v as_o in_o the_o natural_a body_n the_o same_o cause_n which_o make_v a_o member_n make_v it_o also_o a_o unite_a member_n insomuch_o that_o in_o all_o the_o fraction_n and_o division_n we_o see_v among_o the_o godly_a we_o ought_v to_o have_v our_o eye_n up_o more_o to_o god_n to_o consider_v that_o power_n which_o make_v they_o holy_a must_v unite_v they_o and_o indeed_o to_o make_v they_o gracious_a and_o holy_a be_v the_o great_a work_n yea_o unity_n will_v flow_v by_o a_o necessary_a resultancy_n from_o our_o membership_n in_o christ_n but_o that_o still_o our_o corruption_n be_v too_o strong_a and_o apt_a to_o disturb_v all_o second_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o be_v not_o only_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o unity_n but_o also_o of_o the_o harmonious_a suitable_a proportion_n to_o each_o other_o we_o have_v a_o admirable_a description_n of_o this_o harmonious_a suitableness_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n body_n colos_n 2.19_o ephes_n 4.15_o 16._o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o text_n full_a of_o rich_a and_o glorious_a matter_n and_o to_o understand_v it_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o cause_n why_o those_o false_a teacher_n do_v advance_v the_o worship_n of_o angel_n introduce_v humane_a tradition_n and_o all_o to_o set_v up_o other_o mean_n and_o way_n of_o justification_n than_o the_o scripture_n have_v appoint_v it_o be_v say_v he_o because_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o head_n so_o that_o every_o christian_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o all_o spiritual_a concernment_n be_v still_o to_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n as_o the_o head_n and_o not_o to_o let_v he_o go_v and_o this_o he_o amplifi_v from_o a_o twofold_a precious_a effect_n of_o this_o head_n the_o first_o respect_v the_o union_n of_o believer_n to_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o body_n be_v say_v by_o joint_n to_o receive_v nourishment_n that_o as_o the_o body_n have_v its_o nourishment_n suppeditate_v by_o those_o natural_a help_n so_o have_v every_o christian_n from_o christ_n now_o the_o joint_n that_o suppeditates_fw-la these_o spiritual_a help_n be_v chief_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o roman_n 8.9_o if_o any_o man_n have_v net_n the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o so_o that_o as_o that_o be_v not_o a_o member_n true_o unite_v to_o the_o head_n which_o be_v not_o inform_v with_o the_o same_o form_n the_o head_n be_v so_o neither_o be_v that_o christian_n real_o unite_v to_o christ_n which_o want_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n now_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v here_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o administer_v nourishment_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v proper_o signify_v to_o supply_v all_o those_o ornament_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o such_o as_o keep_v their_o sacred_a dance_n and_o festivity_n but_o here_o it_o signify_v the_o supply_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o our_o spiritual_a end_n and_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d add_v amplifi_v it_o denote_v the_o full_a plentiful_a and_o abundant_a supply_n it_o give_v so_o that_o you_o see_v it_o be_v christ_n spirit_n not_o we_o which_o do_v thus_o enable_v we_o the_o second_o benefit_n flow_v from_o christ_n our_o head_n be_v of_o the_o member_n themselves_o they_o by_o band_n be_v knit_v together_o now_o the_o band_n here_o be_v chief_o also_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n though_o gift_n and_o grace_n do_v ordinary_o unite_v so_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12.13_o for_o we_o all_o by_o one_o spirit_n be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n so_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n do_v also_o work_v in_o all_o believer_n inflame_v and_o exciting_a to_o such_o grace_n whereby_o they_o have_v intimate_a communion_n one_o with_o another_o now_o from_o these_o two_o benefit_n conjoin_v we_o have_v the_o admirable_a fruit_n thereof_o that_o the_o body_n grow_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n the_o spiritual_a growth_n of_o christian_n as_o in_o the_o body_n be_v call_v the_o increase_n of_o god_n partly_o because_o god_n only_o be_v the_o efficient_a and_o cause_n of_o it_o partly_o formal_o because_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o increase_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a partly_o final_o because_o it_o be_v to_o the_o glory_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n so_o that_o by_o all_o this_o we_o see_v every_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o thrive_a and_o grow_v member_n and_o that_o harmonious_o according_a to_o its_o respective_a nature_n and_o all_o this_o come_v whole_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o a_o unity_n in_o the_o harmonious_a increase_n of_o it_o depend_v sole_o upon_o he_o by_o this_o explication_n the_o other_o forementioned_a text_n may_v also_o be_v discover_v last_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o constancy_n of_o that_o unity_n the_o godly_a have_v this_o union_n in_o christ_n body_n can_v never_o be_v dissolve_v as_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o christ_n can_v never_o be_v divide_v so_o neither_o the_o mystical_a therefore_o our_o sound_a divine_n do_v well_o from_o christ_n indwelling_a in_o we_o propugne_v and_o assert_v the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n use_v of_o instruction_n
complete_a perfection_n of_o a_o christian_a who_o be_v make_v righteousness_n wisdom_n and_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v the_o character_n of_o those_o that_o be_v spiritual_a they_o have_v no_o confidence_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n jesus_n phil._n 3.3_o last_o we_o glorify_v christ_n real_o in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n when_o we_o walk_v as_o member_n suitable_o to_o the_o head_n when_o we_o order_v our_o conversation_n answerable_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o how_o often_o do_v wicked_a man_n reproach_n and_o dishonour_n christ_n by_o their_o ungodly_a life_n as_o if_o christ_n teach_v they_o no_o better_o or_o as_o if_o christ_n die_v not_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o all_o ungodly_a and_o sinful_a lust_n therefore_o on_o the_o other_o side_n than_o we_o honour_v christ_n when_o we_o be_v holy_a as_o he_o be_v zealous_a as_o he_o be_v humble_a and_o meek_a as_o he_o be_v as_o paul_n say_v he_o carry_v the_o mark_n of_o christ_n upon_o his_o body_n so_o do_v thou_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n upon_o thy_o soul_n we_o come_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o a_o brief_a description_n of_o the_o subject_n describe_v those_o that_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o now_o this_o be_v the_o opposite_a description_n to_o such_o who_o be_v of_o the_o world_n by_o give_v unto_o christ_n some_o understand_v by_o a_o metonymy_n of_o the_o effect_n for_o the_o cause_n god_n decree_n to_o give_v as_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o the_o grace_n give_v we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v that_o be_v decree_v to_o be_v give_v to_o we_o so_o some_o expound_v the_o foregoing_a place_n the_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o that_o be_v which_o thou_o have_v decree_v to_o give_v even_o as_o in_o this_o chapter_n he_o say_v i_o come_v to_o thou_o i_o sanctify_v myself_o and_o as_o john_n 6.33_o every_o one_o that_o my_o father_n give_v shall_v come_v to_o i_o where_o by_o give_v must_v be_v understand_v a_o decree_n to_o give_v for_o actual_a give_v be_v the_o very_a come_n itself_o unto_o christ_n though_o this_o be_v true_a yet_o we_o must_v add_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o believe_v so_o it_o be_v a_o decree_n of_o give_v but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o who_o do_v then_o believe_v it_o be_v a_o actual_a give_v now_o whereas_o we_o see_v the_o original_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n former_o pray_v for_o and_o now_o all_o glory_n here_o be_v because_o some_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o father_n we_o may_v observe_v god_n that_o it_o be_v no_o freewill_n or_o preparatory_a work_n in_o man_n that_o begin_v either_o his_o grace_n or_o glory_n but_o the_o sole_a gift_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v but_o touch_v at_o this_o because_o handle_v before_o only_o as_o our_o saviour_n think_v fit_a to_o use_v this_o description_n of_o believer_n so_o often_o in_o one_o chapter_n so_o it_o shall_v also_o inform_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n which_o ought_v constant_o to_o reign_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o do_v not_o prevent_v god_n but_o god_n grace_n do_v prevent_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o choose_v he_o but_o he_o choose_v we_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o violent_a wrest_n of_o the_o word_n by_o arminian_n when_o they_o will_v have_v this_o give_v of_o some_o to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v understand_v for_o the_o consequent_a man_n obey_a and_o receive_v of_o the_o grace_n offer_v and_o so_o we_o give_v ourselves_o to_o christ_n and_o be_v not_o give_v by_o the_o father_n that_o the_o initial_o of_o all_o good_a be_v from_o grace_n only_o and_o not_o of_o we_o be_v abundant_o convince_v by_o that_o wretched_a sinful_a and_o woeful_a pollution_n that_o we_o be_v all_o bear_v in_o like_o that_o miserable_a infant_n speak_v of_o by_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n chap._n 16._o i_o shall_v not_o doctrinal_o enlarge_v this_o only_o let_v the_o use_v be_v 1._o admonition_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o all_o those_o proud_a and_o self-advancing_a doctrine_n that_o magnify_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n that_o think_v not_o grace_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o if_o it_o be_v require_v it_o be_v only_a ad_fw-la facilius_fw-la operandum_fw-la or_o that_o grace_n do_v only_o excite_v and_o stir_v up_o the_o natural_a ability_n within_o we_o oh_o take_v heed_n of_o swallow_v down_o this_o deadly_a poison_n use_v 2._o of_o exhortation_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o all_o humility_n and_o astonishment_n to_o admire_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n that_o mollify_v thou_o that_o prepare_v thou_o that_o begin_v first_o upon_o thou_o alas_o thou_o be_v wallow_v in_o thy_o blood_n thou_o be_v hot_o pursue_v thy_o sin_n thou_o do_v violent_o refuse_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n till_o at_o last_o he_o open_v thy_o heart_n and_o save_v thou_o against_o thy_o will_n make_v thou_o of_o unwilling_a willing_a sermon_n cxxxviii_o of_o god_n love_n to_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o in_o he_o to_o all_o believer_n from_o all_o eternity_n john_n 17._o ●4_n for_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n this_o last_o clause_n be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o some_o make_v it_o a_o reason_n of_o christ_n petition_n why_o the_o father_n shall_v hear_v he_o viz._n because_o he_o always_o love_v he_o and_o so_o nothing_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o he_o other_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o gift_n of_o glory_n mention_v immediate_o the_o father_n give_v christ_n glory_n because_o he_o love_v he_o from_o eternity_n but_o these_o do_v not_o oppose_v but_o may_v include_v one_o another_o the_o only_a doubt_n be_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o love_n christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n many_o understand_v it_o of_o christ_n as_o the_o natural_a and_o only_a son_n of_o god_n that_o as_o he_o have_v always_o the_o same_o glory_n with_o the_o father_n so_o likewise_o he_o be_v always_o love_v of_o he_o and_o from_o hence_o they_o prove_v the_o deity_n of_o christ_n but_o calvin_n and_o other_o expound_v it_o of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n that_o the_o father_n do_v love_v he_o from_o the_o beginning_n in_o appoint_v of_o he_o to_o be_v a_o mediator_n and_o prepare_v he_o thereunto_o now_o this_o seem_v the_o more_o genuine_a interpretation_n and_o do_v not_o exclude_v but_o include_v the_o former_a also_o so_o that_o by_o direct_a consequence_n the_o eternal_a godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v assert_v indeed_n piscator_fw-la refer_v those_o word_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thou_o have_v give_v as_o v_o 5._o imply_v but_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n to_o make_v such_o a_o trajection_n the_o sum_n be_v that_o christ_n as_o mediator_n do_v refer_v all_o the_o glory_n and_o honour_n he_o have_v to_o the_o father_n love_n now_o you_o must_v know_v that_o when_o the_o father_n love_v he_o as_o mediator_n it_o be_v not_o absolute_o terminate_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o believer_n in_o he_o and_o therefore_o this_o love_a of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v extend_v unto_o all_o believer_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o they_o because_o of_o christ_n eph._n 1.4_o where_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v choose_v in_o he_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n where_o that_o love_n be_v refer_v to_o god_n predestinate_v and_o elect_v of_o we_o by_o some_o interpreter_n so_o that_o from_o the_o word_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o god_n the_o father_n love_v christ_n as_o mediator_n eternity_n and_o thereby_o all_o believer_n in_o he_o from_o eternity_n this_o truth_n deserve_v explication_n and_o application_n and_o 1._o let_v we_o consider_v wherein_o the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n be_v show_v to_o ch●ist_v as_o mediator_n as_o that_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o design_v of_o he_o to_o it_o and_o approbation_n or_o complacency_n in_o he_o while_o discharge_v of_o it_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o prepare_v he_o thereunto_o be_v see_v in_o these_o thing_n 1._o in_o appoint_v and_o ordain_v the_o second_o person_n as_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o for_o herein_o do_v the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n because_o when_o mankind_n be_v lose_v and_o justice_n can_v no_o way_n be_v satisfy_v by_o any_o mere_a creature_n that_o in_o this_o exigency_n christ_n shall_v offer_v himself_o and_o so_o ready_o profess_v behold_v i_o come_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n o_o lord_n thus_o when_o he_o former_o have_v say_v i_o sanctify_v
558_o a_o ministry_n be_v appoint_v for_o spiritual_a end_n 558_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o ministry_n ibid._n n_o name_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o name_n in_o phil._n 2._o 28_o all_o church-meeting_n censure_n and_o duty_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n 28_o all_o thing_n have_v their_o success_n in_o christ_n name_n ibid._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o god_n name_n 162_o nature_n all_o by_o nature_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o enmity_n against_o god_n 14_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v assume_v by_o the_o divine_a 666_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v two_o distinct_a person_n yet_o one_o in_o nature_n and_o essence_n 582_o natural_a natural_a knowledge_n insufficient_a to_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n 92_o o_o obedience_n that_o be_v proper_a obedience_n that_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n require_v of_o it_o 198_o there_o be_v five_o ground_n of_o it_o 200_o oblation_n two_o thing_n admirable_a in_o christ_n oblation_n of_o himself_o 503_o office_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o ministerial_a office_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o every_o minister_n have_v 492_o that_o there_o be_v a_o distinct_a office_n of_o the_o ministry_n 498_o that_o none_o may_v enter_v into_o that_o office_n without_o a_o authoritative_a mission_n 499_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v what_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a office_n and_o what_o be_v a_o ordinary_a office_n 558_o office_n christ_n be_v fit_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n 503_o 504_o vide_fw-la priestly_n p_o people_n god_n people_n call_v out_o of_o the_o world_n 172_o how_o many_o way_n a_o people_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v go_n 176_o the_o godly_a be_v god_n people_n in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n 177_o the_o open_n of_o this_o in_o five_o particular_n 177_o 178_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n upon_o several_a title_n 178_o 179_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o practical_a improvement_n of_o it_o 180_o it_o be_v a_o sure_a character_n of_o god_n people_n to_o be_v a_o willing_a people_n 204_o seven_o reason_n of_o this_o 205_o etc._n etc._n perseverance_n several_a particular_n about_o perseverance_n that_o will_v be_v as_o so_o many_o answer_n to_o objection_n make_v against_o that_o truth_n 352_o 353_o etc._n etc._n argument_n to_o prove_v those_o that_o have_v true_a grace_n shall_v persevere_v 357_o etc._n etc._n power_n power_n as_o it_o be_v express_v in_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 35_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v put_v into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n unless_o by_o god_n power_n we_o be_v keep_v therein_o 307_o how_o many_o way_n the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v keep_v we_o 309_o why_o there_o be_v such_o a_o necessity_n of_o god_n preserve_v power_n 312_o pray_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v for_o any_o one_o man_n in_o particular_a 229_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v for_o a_o reprobate_a as_o such_o 229_o whether_o we_o may_v pray_v in_o faith_n for_o other_o as_o for_o ourselves_o 230_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v for_o ungodly_a man_n 231_o motive_n to_o move_v thereunto_o 231_o 232_o prayer_n the_o matter_n of_o christ_n prayer_n 1._o himself_o 2._o apostle_n 3._o other_o who_o in_o time_n shall_v believe_v 2_o to_o all_o instruction_n etc._n etc._n prayer_n be_v necessary_a ibid._n reason_n on_o god_n part_n on_o the_o word_n part_n on_o man_n part_n 4_o it_o shall_v come_v from_o a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a heart_n 5_o four_o requisite_n to_o spiritual_a prayer_n 6_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o pray_v 6_o customary_a prayer_n receive_v nothing_o from_o god_n 7_o prayer_n be_v mental_a vocal_a 8_o end_n in_o prayer_n 12_o pray_v it_o be_v good_a and_o comfortable_a pray_v for_o they_o that_o discover_v the_o sign_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o 229_o predestination_n the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n shall_v be_v preach_v wary_o 52_o diligent_o ibid._n so_o as_o not_o to_o discourage_v humble_a penitent_n ibid._n prediction_n three_o sort_n of_o prediction_n 396_o priest_n christ_n be_v not_o only_a priest_n but_o sacrifice_n itself_o 510_o priestly_n concern_v christ_n priestly_a office_n consider_v these_o thing_n 508_o the_o adjunct_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n ibid._n priesthood_n proposition_n concern_v christ_n priesthood_n 510_o principle_n principle_n that_o do_v constitute_v a_o gracious_a disposition_n 32_o unite_n principle_n in_o doctrine_n 577_o vide_fw-la unite_n privilege_n privilege_n that_o come_v by_o christ_n death_n 245_o promised_n thing_n promise_v must_v be_v pray_v for_o 137_o this_o be_v explain_v in_o seven_o particular_n 137_o 138_o etc._n etc._n six_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v so_o 139_o what_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o such_o a_o prayer_n 141_o etc._n etc._n propriety_n they_o only_o can_v plead_v a_o propriety_n in_o god_n and_o christ_n who_o be_v careful_a to_o keep_v his_o word_n 182_o god_n peculiar_a propriety_n in_o his_o people_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o good_a that_o accrueth_n to_o they_o 255_o proposition_n concern_v god_n propriety_n in_o his_o people_n 255_o 256_o god_n propriety_n exclude_v all_o other_o creature_n ib._n how_o the_o propriety_n of_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o good_a 258_o property_n the_o characteristical_a property_n of_o the_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n 584_o property_n in_o the_o godly_a which_o make_v they_o lovely_a and_o precious_a in_o god_n sight_n 687_o protect_n the_o ground_n why_o god_n will_v protect_v such_o as_o be_v hate_v for_o his_o name_n sake_n 423_o protection_n christ_n protection_n be_v to_o one_o believer_n as_o well_o as_o to_o another_o 527_o q_o qualification_n the_o qualification_n of_o such_o to_o who_o christ_n death_n be_v make_v save_o advantageous_a 245_o question_n the_o great_a question_n that_o all_o aught_o to_o put_v be_v how_o may_v i_o get_v eternal_a life_n 67_o we_o must_v take_v the_o right_a way_n to_o answer_v this_o question_n 68_o vide_fw-la eternal_n life_n r_o reading_n whither_o reading_n be_v preach_v 496_o redeem_a that_o not_o all_o but_o some_o of_o mankind_n be_v redeem_a by_o christ_n 51_o redemption_n our_o redemption_n obtain_v by_o christ_n be_v a_o glorify_v of_o god_n 113_o how_o the_o maintainer_n of_o universal_a redemption_n differ_v among_o themselves_o 241_o vide_fw-la universal_a relation_n it_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n for_o the_o humble_a christian_n in_o his_o prayer_n to_o improve_v this_o relation_n of_o a_o father_n 658_o religion_n we_o be_v not_o to_o condemn_v the_o way_n of_o religion_n though_o some_o among_o they_o prove_v scandalous_a 377_o some_o consideration_n to_o bring_v this_o home_n 378_o the_o unreasonableness_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o condemn_a religion_n for_o some_o hypocrite_n therein_o 379_o repetition_n repetion_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n in_o prayer_n may_v be_v useful_a 133_o vide_fw-la tautology_n when_o the_o ground_n of_o repetition_n be_v good_a 133_o etc._n etc._n when_o repetition_n be_v forbid_v 135_o reprobate_n reprobate_n receive_v much_o benefit_n by_o christ_n death_n 239_o righteous_a god_n whether_o consider_v as_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n or_o as_o a_o father_n to_o believer_n be_v righteous_a in_o all_o his_o way_n 674_o reason_n why_o god_n be_v righteous_a in_o all_o his_o administration_n 674_o righteousness_n it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a sin_n to_o trust_v to_o our_o own_o righteousness_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o four_o particular_n 219_o mean_n to_o drive_v they_o out_o of_o self-righteousnesse_n 220_o 221_o how_o righteousness_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o god_n 674_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n as_o a_o father_n to_o his_o people_n in_o all_o their_o affliction_n 676_o s_o sacrifice_n that_o christ_n set_v himself_o apart_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o 502_o what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o sacrifice_n 510_o the_o property_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n 511_o salvation_n salvation_n be_v to_o be_v desire_v in_o subordination_n to_o god_n glory_n 32_o the_o everlasting_a salvation_n of_o man_n determine_v 51_o salvation_n be_v of_o grace_n 253_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o 253_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n 679_o sanctification_n growth_n in_o sanctification_n illustrate_v by_o the_o contrary_n unto_o it_o 464_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o our_o sanctification_n 468_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o point_n 469_o the_o word_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o our_o beginning_n and_o increase_n in_o sanctification_n 471_o christ_n die_v not_o only_o for_o our_o justification_n but_o sanctification_n also_o 515_o how_o many_o way_n christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o sanctification_n 515_o sanctify_a how_o many_o way_n a_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v more_o sanctify_a 459_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v sanctify_v but_o we_o must_v be_v more_o and_o more_o holy_a 466_o what_o be_v
of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o church-office_n according_a to_o his_o rule_n and_o way_n minister_n such_o as_o be_v send_v by_o he_o be_v under_o his_o proper_a care_n and_o protection_n he_o do_v not_o only_o pray_v for_o the_o apostle_n as_o believer_n but_o as_o in_o that_o office_n to_o open_v this_o consider_v in_o what_o particular_n his_o care_n be_v show_v to_o his_o minister_n and_o 1._o it_o be_v to_o guide_v and_o lead_v they_o into_o the_o truth_n instruct_v they_o with_o wisdom_n and_o ability_n to_o that_o work_n christ_n call_v none_o to_o his_o work_n but_o he_o give_v they_o answerable_a ability_n though_o the_o apostle_n be_v at_o first_o ignorant_a and_o illitera●●_n yet_o how_o glorious_o do_v he_o furnish_v they_o with_o gift_n and_o power_n to_o do_v miracle_n before_o he_o send_v they_o to_o preach_v unto_o the_o world_n now_o though_o the_o officer_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o succession_n have_v not_o the_o promise_n of_o such_o infallibility_n yet_o because_o of_o their_o office_n and_o call_v they_o discharge_v their_o duty_n and_o use_v the_o mean_n god_n have_v appoint_v god_n will_v more_o peculiar_o go_v along_o with_o they_o and_o bless_v they_o then_o private_a christian_n else_o why_o shall_v the_o scripture_n give_v they_o the_o name_n of_o guide_n and_o light_n why_o shall_v he_o command_v the_o people_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o they_o and_o that_o he_o who_o despise_v they_o despise_v god_n for_o though_o these_o place_n prove_v not_o infallibility_n yet_o they_o do_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v this_o orderly_a way_n and_o that_o he_o who_o will_v expect_v god_n blessing_n must_v make_v use_n of_o their_o guidance_n and_o ministry_n 2._o christ_n peculiar_a love_n be_v see_v in_o clothing_n they_o with_o inward_a strength_n and_o corroborate_n of_o they_o so_o by_o zeal_n and_o heavenly_a fortitude_n that_o they_o will_v discharge_v their_o duty_n though_o man_n rage_n and_o oppose_v the_o apostle_n speak_v excellent_o to_o this_o purpose_n 2_o tim._n 1.7_o god_n have_v not_o give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o of_o powar_n love_n and_o a_o sound_a mind_n therefore_o he_o must_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n paul_n he_o desire_v the_o philippian_n to_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o he_o may_v preach_v the_o word_n bold_o god_n promise_v jeremiah_n to_o make_v his_o forehead_n like_o brass_n and_o not_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o wicked_a man_n and_o thus_o micah_n cry_v out_o i_o be_o full_a of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o tell_v jacob_n his_o transgression_n mic._n 3.8_o 3._o god_n be_v wonderful_a in_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o wicked_a enemy_n hence_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o hold_v these_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n rev._n 1.17_o and_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v hear_v which_o he_o instance_v in_o in_o this_o chater_n they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n hate_v they_o therefore_o he_o pray_v god_n will_v keep_v they_o and_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o see_v how_o god_n have_v preserve_v his_o faithful_a minister_n in_o all_o age_n though_o some_o have_v die_v for_o the_o truth_n last_o he_o be_v with_o they_o in_o blessing_n their_o labour_n and_o give_v increase_n to_o their_o plant_n and_o water_v as_o christ_n promise_v i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o their_o labour_n he_o pull_v down_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o apostle_n preach_v satan_n begin_v to_o fall_v like_o lightning_n from_o heaven_n now_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o peculiar_a love_n be_v 1._o because_o they_o have_v the_o same_o general_a call_n and_o office_n as_o christ_n himself_o have_v as_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o i_o have_v send_v they_o though_o there_o be_v many_o particular_a difference_n yet_o in_o the_o general_n they_o agree_v christ_n be_v send_v to_o publish_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o because_o of_o this_o the_o world_n oppose_v he_o revile_v he_o and_o he_o endure_v great_a contradiction_n of_o sinner_n it_o be_v therefore_o christ_n own_o case_n and_o then_o he_o will_v pity_v such_o as_o be_v tempt_v like_o he_o 2._o it_o be_v his_o work_n and_o employment_n they_o be_v about_o they_o go_v out_o in_o his_o authority_n they_o act_n in_o his_o name_n they_o preach_v he_o as_o the_o messiah_n they_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v all_o into_o obedience_n to_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v a_o tender_a special_a care_n over_o they_o 3._o their_o work_n be_v a_o difficult_a and_o dangerous_a work_n the_o office_n be_v if_o faithful_o discharge_v contrary_a to_o the_o lust_n and_o way_n of_o all_o man_n no_o wicked_a man_n can_v love_v a_o true_a and_o godly_a ministry_n no_o more_o than_o soar_v eye_n can_v endure_v the_o sun_n use_v of_o encouragement_n to_o the_o godly_a minister_n to_o go_v on_o with_o his_o work_n maugre_o all_o the_o opposition_n and_o contempt_n of_o wicked_a man_n it_o be_v not_o their_o work_n but_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o their_o own_o but_o christ_n let_v they_o not_o fear_v while_o he_o be_v at_o their_o right_a hand_n use_v 2._o how_o grievous_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o oppose_v and_o set_v against_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n and_o that_o when_o faithful_o discharge_v their_o duty_n because_o they_o preach_v the_o truth_n and_o press_v to_o a_o godly_a life_n this_o enrage_v thou_o to_o such_o they_o be_v command_v to_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n sermon_n xcv_o of_o christ_n mission_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n john_n 17.18_o as_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o into_o the_o world_n so_o also_o have_v i_o send_v they_o into_o the_o world_n have_v consider_v of_o the_o coherence_n of_o this_o text_n with_o the_o precede_a we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o argument_n or_o matter_n itself_o and_o that_o be_v take_v from_o the_o peculiar_a relation_n and_o office_n that_o they_o be_v put_v in_o now_o this_o their_o office_n be_v describe_v 1._o from_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o send_v they_o do_v not_o of_o themselves_o intrude_v into_o it_o or_o go_v without_o a_o call_v but_o they_o be_v send_v 2._o there_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n or_o the_o person_n send_v i_o send_v they_o say_v christ_n 3._o there_o be_v the_o subject_a who_o be_v send_v and_o that_o be_v the_o disciple_n 4._o the_o term_n to_o which_o of_o their_o send_n and_o that_o be_v into_o the_o world_n last_o here_o be_v the_o example_n and_o pattern_n even_o as_o the_o father_n send_v i_o into_o the_o world_n not_o that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o likeness_n in_o every_o particular_a but_o in_o the_o general_a they_o both_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v a_o call_v from_o god_n i_o shall_v treat_v in_o order_n and_o first_o begin_v with_o christ_n mission_n which_o be_v make_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o do_v observe_v that_o christ_n be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n and_o do_v not_o of_o himself_o undertake_v that_o office_n earth_n he_o be_v employ_v in_o while_o on_o earth_n christ_n himself_o will_v not_o be_v the_o prophet_n priest_n or_o king_n of_o his_o church_n without_o a_o call_v or_o commission_n from_o the_o father_n thereunto_o hence_o in_o john_n gospel_n he_o do_v so_o exceed_v often_o mention_v this_o that_o his_o father_n send_v he_o still_o resolve_v his_o doctrine_n his_o authority_n his_o will_n and_o work_n into_o he_o that_o send_v he_o therefore_o not_o only_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v call_v so_o but_o christ_n himself_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n heb._n 3.1_o consider_v the_o apostle_n and_o highpriest_n of_o our_o profession_n christ_n jesus_n a_o apostle_n be_v as_o much_o as_o one_o that_o be_v send_v and_o thus_o christ_n be_v there_o call_v a_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o some_o make_v a_o mystery_n in_o that_o john_n 9.7_o when_o christ_n cure_v the_o blind_a man_n he_o bid_v he_o go_v and_o wash_v in_o the_o pool_n of_o siloam_n which_o be_v by_o interpretation_n send_v say_v the_o evangelist_n as_o if_o hereby_o our_o saviour_n will_v teach_v that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n that_o be_v to_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n that_o our_o saviour_n do_v expect_v a_o send_n or_o a_o call_v appear_v notable_o heb._n 5_o 4._o no_o man_n take_v this_o honour_n upon_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v speak_v of_o the_o priesthood_n thing_n and_o so_o also_o christ_n glorify_v not_o himself_o to_o be_v make_v a_o highpriest_n but_o let_v we_o explain_v this_o for_o this_o truth_n be_v profitable_a unto_o we_o see_v it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o he_o be_v send_v and_o first_o consider_v that_o though_o the_o three_o person_n
seed_n be_v sow_v the_o devil_n superseminated_a his_o tare_n in_o a_o wilderness_n or_o a_o place_n of_o weed_n he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o diligent_a therefore_o breach_n and_o division_n because_o they_o be_v a_o kind_n or_o part_n of_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n may_v soon_o accompany_v the_o true_a church_n then_o outward_a unity_n and_o prosperity_n last_o we_o grant_v that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v full_o perfect_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o knowledge_n and_o holiness_n it_o will_v always_o have_v unity_n as_o we_o see_v in_o heaven_n where_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o but_o because_o we_o know_v in_o part_n we_o be_v godly_a in_o part_n therefore_o these_o breach_n may_v be_v make_v upon_o we_o discord_n then_o and_o division_n may_v be_v in_o a_o imperfect_a church_n but_o not_o a_o perfect_a therefore_o our_o saviour_n prayer_n will_v have_v its_o accomplishment_n only_o in_o heaven_n let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o show_v why_o unity_n be_v such_o a_o attractive_a and_o a_o divine_a loadstone_n to_o bring_v other_o unto_o the_o faith_n faith_n and_o first_o because_o it_o be_v ingraff_v in_o a_o man_n to_o cleave_v to_o such_o a_o way_n of_o religion_n as_o will_v abide_v and_o continue_v have_v any_o nation_n change_v their_o god_n say_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n 2.11_o you_o see_v the_o statesman_n argue_v on_o this_o ground_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o oppose_v the_o christian_n for_o if_o that_o religion_n be_v of_o god_n it_o will_v stand_v act._n 5.39_o now_o this_o be_v a_o clear_a axiom_n confirm_v also_o by_o our_o saviour_n that_o no_o kingdom_n divide_v against_o itself_o can_v stand_v luk._n 11.17_o by_o that_o argument_n our_o saviour_n prove_v he_o can_v not_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o then_o the_o devil_n will_v overthrow_v his_o own_o kingdom_n division_n then_o and_o difference_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o stumble_a block_n for_o who_o will_v go_v into_o that_o house_n which_o have_v its_o chief_a part_n fall_v from_o one_o another_o who_o will_v venture_v in_o that_o ship_n which_o be_v full_a of_o leak_n do_v not_o all_o say_v let_v they_o alone_o they_o will_v destroy_v one_o another_o there_o need_v no_o outward_a force_n to_o ruin_v they_o they_o will_v consume_v themselves_o at_o last_o second_o division_n must_v needs_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o progress_n of_o truth_n because_o god_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o to_o be_v a_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o of_o order_n the_o apostle_n use_v this_o consideration_n to_o restrain_v those_o confusion_n and_o disorderly_a custom_n the_o christian_n have_v in_o their_o public_a assembly_n 1_o cor._n 14._o if_o then_o god_n be_v a_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o order_n how_o can_v any_o man_n think_v his_o truth_n and_o people_n be_v there_o where_o all_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n be_v it_o be_v babel_n and_o not_o jerusalem_n that_o in_o the_o build_n thereof_o man_n be_v so_o confound_v that_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o language_n of_o one_o another_o jam._n 3.16_o where_o envy_v and_o strife_n be_v there_o be_v confusion_n and_o every_o evil_a work_n now_o every_o one_o be_v apt_a to_o argue_v certain_o if_o this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o god_n if_o these_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n there_o will_v not_o be_v such_o confusion_n among_o they_o god_n that_o make_v this_o great_a world_n in_o such_o excellent_a order_n will_v much_o more_o make_v his_o church_n his_o choice_a plant_n more_o beautiful_a three_o division_n do_v retard_v the_o gospel_n because_o man_n who_o have_v any_o way_n hear_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o alone_o it_o be_v who_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n will_v quick_o conclude_v that_o this_o spirit_n can_v be_v against_o itself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o more_o observable_a because_o every_o party_n do_v pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o command_n 1_o john_n 3.1_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v every_o spirit_n that_o be_v doctrine_n pretend_v to_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n if_o then_o all_o party_n do_v plead_v god_n spirit_n and_o its_o teach_n they_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v in_o their_o unbelief_n when_o they_o see_v contrary_a spirit_n of_o contrary_a doctrine_n and_o that_o with_o great_a zeal_n condemn_v each_o other_o thus_o we_o have_v show_v you_o what_o a_o world_n of_o hurt_n division_n among_o the_o godly_a do_v insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n that_o any_o be_v bring_v off_o from_o their_o former_a vain_a conversation_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o division_n have_v so_o sad_o reign_v among_o we_o wonder_v not_o if_o conversion_n be_v so_o rare_a a_o thing_n if_o so_o few_o come_v in_o cordial_o to_o own_o christ_n for_o sad_a offence_n be_v make_v by_o these_o difference_n and_o such_o as_o cause_v they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v that_o never_o any_o more_o one_o soul_n may_v be_v bring_v into_o heaven_n way_n in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v those_o proper_a sin_n world_n that_o division_n among_o the_o godly_a be_v apt_a to_o breed_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o first_o be_v atheism_n and_o irreligion_n to_o be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o true_a religion_n but_o that_o such_o thing_n be_v the_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n of_o man_n no_o doubt_n but_o thousand_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o atheistical_a way_n they_o will_v believe_v there_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o no_o religion_n better_o than_o another_o for_o they_o see_v the_o world_n can_v agree_v about_o it_o 2._o it_o breed_v stiffness_n and_o obstinacy_n in_o their_o former_a erroneous_a and_o superstitious_a way_n no_o doubt_v this_o keep_v multitude_n harden_v in_o their_o popish_a way_n and_o many_o silly_a people_n they_o will_v keep_v to_o their_o old_a way_n and_o why_o because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o way_n and_o every_o one_o have_v a_o religion_n for_o himself_o therefore_o they_o will_v stay_v where_o they_o be_v they_o know_v not_o whither_o they_o may_v stumble_v at_o last_o they_o think_v to_o go_v out_o of_o their_o old_a way_n be_v to_o go_v out_o of_o their_o old_a wit_n likewise_o at_o the_o same_o time_n last_o it_o be_v apt_a to_o breed_v fickleness_n inconstancy_n and_o scepticism_n be_v there_o not_o many_o call_v seeker_n that_o think_v there_o be_v now_o no_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o therefore_o be_v in_o their_o soul_n what_o cain_n in_o his_o body_n vagabond_n about_o the_o earth_n and_o whence_o be_v all_o this_o the_o bitter_a root_n of_o this_o be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n which_o they_o entertain_v one_o after_o another_o which_o at_o last_o make_v they_o quite_o without_o any_o bottom_n at_o all_o use_v of_o instruction_n to_o every_o christian_a again_o and_o again_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o cause_v division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v afraid_a by_o any_o opinion_n or_o practice_n to_o make_v a_o unnecessary_a rent_n for_o do_v thou_o not_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o thou_o to_o hinder_v all_o other_o from_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n will_v not_o this_o be_v a_o sad_a aggravation_n when_o man_n damn_v in_o hell_n shall_v plead_v lord_n i_o be_v come_v even_o i_o be_v hopeful_o incline_v to_o such_o thing_n but_o this_o man_n and_o that_o man_n by_o his_o division_n stop_v i_o he_o make_v i_o a_o proselyte_n to_o some_o pernicious_a way_n while_o i_o be_v go_v to_o christ_n have_v not_o such_o a_o man_n be_v in_o the_o way_n i_o have_v never_o be_v seduce_v certain_o if_o our_o saviour_n pronounce_v such_o a_o woe_n to_o those_o by_o who_o offence_n come_v how_o sore_o will_v it_o fall_v upon_o those_o who_o make_v these_o offence_n in_o the_o high_a nature_n use_v 2._o to_o take_v heed_n that_o these_o division_n prove_v not_o a_o snare_n to_o thou_o bewail_v divide_v time_n but_o look_v they_o do_v not_o divide_v thou_o and_o god_n thou_o and_o truth_n but_o do_v thou_o 1._o walk_v humble_o renounce_v thy_o own_o strength_n for_o it_o be_v god_n not_o thyself_o must_v preserve_v thou_o 2._o pray_v much_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o give_v thou_o that_o unction_n and_o sense_n exercise_v to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o evil_n 3._o take_v heed_n of_o foment_v difference_n and_o make_v the_o wound_v wide_a but_o with_o the_o good_a samaritan_n bring_v oil_n not_o salt_n to_o the_o wound_n last_o let_v this_o make_v thou_o long_o for_o heaven_n where_o the_o strife_n of_o brethren_n will_v then_o cease_v sermon_n cxx_o a_o consideration_n of_o faith_n in_o its_o general_n nature_n as_o dogmatic_a or_o historical_a carry_v out_o to_o scripture-truths_n because_o of_o divine_a authority_n
joh_n 17.21_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v thou_o have_v send_v i_o we_o be_v treat_v on_o the_o consequent_a of_o unity_n among_o the_o godly_a that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v which_o belief_n have_v be_v already_o consider_v relative_o as_o a_o product_n of_o unity_n we_o shall_v now_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o absolute_o as_o it_o be_v in_o its_o own_o self_n it_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v christ_n into_o the_o world_n we_o former_o speak_v of_o believe_v in_o its_o specifical_a nature_n as_o it_o justify_v by_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n we_o shall_v here_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o its_o general_a nature_n because_o this_o believe_v be_v common_a both_o to_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o the_o sound_n christian_n for_o of_o that_o world_n which_o do_v believe_v all_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o a_o save_a manner_n so_o that_o although_o none_o who_o believe_v christ_n send_v into_o the_o world_n aught_o to_o stay_v in_o that_o general_a but_o particular_o to_o improve_v christ_n that_o he_o may_v be_v send_v for_o their_o good_a yet_o because_o the_o expression_n be_v here_o general_a i_o shall_v consider_v of_o it_o as_o a_o general_n for_o whereas_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n the_o object_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v christ_n himself_o ens_fw-la incomplexum_fw-la here_o it_o be_v a_o proposition_n though_o that_o only_o be_v the_o objectum_fw-la quo_fw-la and_o not_o quod_fw-la upon_o which_o our_o faith_n be_v ultimate_o terminate_v obs_n god_n that_o the_o believe_v of_o christ_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o world_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o first_o principle_n of_o our_o conversion_n unto_o god_n though_o man_n have_v never_o so_o much_o understanding_n in_o other_o religious_a point_n as_o that_o scribe_n speak_v of_o mark_v 12._o though_o not_o far_o off_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n until_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n as_o send_v by_o the_o father_n to_o be_v our_o mediator_n that_o as_o the_o apostle_n hebr._n 11._o make_v it_o a_o fundamental_a requisite_a in_o every_o one_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o less_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v therefore_o 1_o cor._n 3._o jesus_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o foundation_n and_o by_o some_o make_v the_o adequate_a object_n of_o divinity_n because_o every_o thing_n consider_v there_o do_v either_o direct_o or_o reductive_o lead_v unto_o christ_n so_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o that_o peculiar_a act_n of_o faith_n apply_v christ_n but_o that_o general_a act_n whereby_o we_o know_v and_o assent_v firm_o and_o immovable_o that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n who_o be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n to_o redeem_v and_o save_v sinner_n for_o though_o all_o be_v think_v to_o believe_v this_o yet_o the_o right_n and_o powerful_a assent_v to_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n both_o of_o all_o holiness_n and_o consolation_n but_o ere_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o some_o distinction_n be_v to_o be_v premise_v distinct_a i_o as_o first_o that_o faith_n be_v sometime_o take_v for_o the_o object_n the_o faith_n quae_fw-la creditur_fw-la the_o doctrine_n believe_v and_o sometime_o for_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n quâ_fw-la creditur_fw-la whereby_o we_o do_v believe_v colos_n 2.5_o to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o the_o doctrine_n so_o some_o be_v say_v to_o err_v to_o deny_v or_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n but_o common_o it_o be_v use_v for_o the_o gracious_a act_n of_o the_o soul_n towards_o those_o object_n only_o it_o be_v good_a to_o observe_v this_o distinction_n because_o some_o place_n be_v bring_v to_o prove_v apostasy_n from_o inherent_a faith_n which_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o doctrine_n 2._o faith_n be_v take_v sometime_o active_o and_o sometime_o passive_o active_o for_o fidelity_n and_o veracity_n in_o promise_n in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v attribute_v to_o god_n and_o to_o man_n sometime_o passive_o for_o the_o assent_v unto_o truth_n because_o of_o another_o testimony_n and_o this_o again_o be_v twofold_a either_o humane_a faith_n when_o we_o believe_v any_o thing_n mere_o because_o of_o humane_a authority_n or_o divine_a when_o we_o believe_v because_o of_o divine_a authority_n and_o this_o be_v great_o to_o be_v observe_v for_o when_o i_o believe_v a_o divine_a truth_n for_o humane_a authority_n or_o witness_n my_o faith_n all_o that_o while_o be_v but_o humane_a as_o those_o that_o believe_v christ_n for_o the_o samaritan_n woman_n testimony_n all_o the_o while_o they_o have_v no_o high_a a_o ground_n than_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o humane_a faith_n and_o then_o a_o papist_n as_o a_o papist_n and_o by_o popish_a principle_n can_v have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o humane_a faith_n for_o the_o utmost_a motive_n in_o which_o their_o faith_n be_v resolve_v be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v but_o humane_a and_o so_o if_o the_o church_n have_v propound_v titus_n livius_n or_o aesop_n fable_n as_o some_o grant_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n people_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o but_o there_o be_v no_o divine_a faith_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o divine_a testimony_n and_o this_o do_v sad_o discover_v million_o of_o baptize_v person_n yet_o to_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n for_o all_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o christian_a faith_n be_v education_n and_o humane_a authority_n it_o be_v not_o because_o god_n have_v say_v it_o or_o he_o have_v reveal_v it_o they_o can_v say_v with_o those_o samaritan_n now_o we_o believe_v no_o long_o for_o education_n sake_n or_o the_o church_n sake_n but_o because_o of_o the_o authority_n and_o divine_a light_n which_o be_v coruscant_fw-la in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o insomuch_o that_o the_o jesuit_n valentia_n do_v confess_v there_o be_v such_o inward_a discovery_n of_o purity_n and_o majesty_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o breed_v such_o a_o inward_a reverence_n and_o persuasion_n that_o no_o other_o book_n can_v do_v 3._o there_o be_v a_o distinction_n of_o great_a antiquity_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n between_o credere_fw-la deum_fw-la to_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o god_n credere_fw-la deo_fw-la to_o believe_v god_n speak_v and_o credere_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la to_o believe_v in_o god_n by_o inward_a union_n with_o he_o and_o love_v of_o he_o now_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o scripture_n make_v no_o such_o difference_n add_v the_o hebrew_n preposition_n beth_n and_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d even_o where_o there_o be_v but_o a_o bare_a historical_a believe_v there_o be_v a_o god_n yet_o for_o explication_n sake_n it_o may_v be_v receive_v and_o those_o only_o say_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n who_o be_v justify_v and_o sanctify_v though_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v it_o sometime_o to_o other_o last_o consider_v that_o the_o soul_n have_v several_a tendency_n and_o motion_n to_o divers_a object_n sometime_o it_o assent_v to_o a_o thing_n by_o help_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o that_o be_v a_o knowledge_n by_o sense_n sometime_o by_o demonstrative_a reason_n it_o know_v a_o thing_n and_o then_o it_o be_v call_v science_n strict_o sometime_o by_o testimony_n or_o authority_n and_o then_o it_o be_v call_v faith_n now_o if_o the_o authority_n be_v divine_a that_o say_v such_o a_o thing_n than_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v deceive_v because_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o so_o there_o aught_o to_o be_v great_a certainty_n and_o firm_a adhesion_n to_o those_o truth_n than_o any_o thing_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n yea_o in_o some_o sense_n it_o have_v more_o evidence_n for_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o of_o the_o credibility_n of_o it_o of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o so_o indeed_o the_o matter_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n be_v more_o evident_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n to_o we_o of_o the_o credibility_n of_o it_o and_o so_o faith_n have_v great_a evidence_n as_o the_o testimony_n for_o such_o truth_n be_v evident_a and_o clear_a though_o the_o truth_n themselves_o be_v supernatural_a and_o high_o transcend_v our_o humane_a capacity_n distinct_a two_o these_o thing_n premise_v let_v we_o come_v to_o examine_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v dogmatical_a or_o historical_a historical_a and_o 1._o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o work_v even_o this_o common_a faith_n no_o man_n can_v know_v and_o give_v assent_n to_o such_o divine_a truth_n unless_o enable_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v to_o believer_n that_o to_o they_o it_o be_v give_v to_o believe_v phil._n 1.29_o god_n which_o take_v in_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o faith_n so_o some_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n no_o man_n can_v say_v